CORNELL UNIVERSITY LIBRARY BOUGHT WITH THE INCOME ''bF THE SAGE ENDO'^MENT FUND GIVEN IN 1891 BY HENRY WILLIAMS SAGE born^i universny Liorary PS 3042.S17 Selections from Thoreau / 3 1924 022 198 521 Cornell University Library The original of tinis bool< is in the Cornell University Library. There are no known copyright restrictions in the United States on the use of the text. http://www.archive.org/details/cu31924022198521 SELECTIONS FEOM THOKEAU •f'i^, iZ 'i>t-^'^ SELECTIONS FEOM THOEEAU EDITED, WITH AN INTRODUCTION HENEY S. SALT AUTHOR OF ' THK LIFE OP HENRY DAVID THOBEAU ' Honlion MACMILLAN AISTD CO. 1895 INTEODUCTION We are most of us familiar with one or another of the many legendary apparitions of the alter ego, or second self, a manifestation which must have entailed considerable inconvenience on the parties whom it principally concerned. It could hardly be agreeable to a person of strong distinctive personality to feel that his astral counterpart was travelling at large about the country, and compromising him by grant- ing unauthorised interviews to all sorts of busy- bodies; still less, perhaps, would he relish such a startling experience as that of the magus Zoroaster, who, if the poet is to be credited, "met his own image walking in the garden." But it should be noted that the annals of literature present equally interesting, and better authenticated examples of a somewhat similar phenomenon. Authors, and especi- ally those of new and unappreciated genius, are not unfrequently subject to the same annoyance as Zoroaster ; nay, worse, for whereas the second self in the legend was at least an exact image of its original, VI SELECTIONS FUOM THOEEAU the literary phantom can seldom boast more than a very superficial resemblance. In a word, there are often two personalities who stand junder the same name before the eyes of the public^the author him- self, as represented in his actual character and writ- ings, and the current idea of the auihor, as misrepre- sented in the critical analysis and exposition of him. And it often goes hard for a time with the reputation of a writer who is thus dogged and superseded by his ghostly rival, for these spectral illusions, flimsy and hollow though they may be, are by no means easy to exorcise, and many years, or even generations, must sometimes elapse before they are finally consigned to their appointed resting-place with the hippogriff, the chimsera, and other kindred superstitions. If ever there was a man of genius who was fore- ordained by the peculiarity of his doctrines and the eccentricity of his actions to be misjudged by critics, it was Thoreau. It is not in the least surprising that I his true character should to this day remain unknown i to the majority of readers, while his place is usurped by a mysterious personage of whose origin I will presently speak. But first let us turn our attention to the real Thoreau, and in particular to that much- maligned gospel of naturalness and simplicity which it is so easy to comprehend if it be studied with sym- pathetic interest, and so easy to distort and miscon- I strue if regarded from a hostile standpoint. Having INTRODUCTION VU seen how Thoreau himself lived and wrote and acted, we shall be better able to appreciate what his carica- turists have erroneously attributed to him; having made ourselves acquainted with the characteristic features of the man, we shall know what to think of the more shadowy lineaments of the phantom. Henry David Thoreau was born at the village of Concord, Massachusetts, on 12th July 1817, his father, John Thoreau, being a pencil -maker, of French extraction, and his mother, whose maiden name was Cynthia Dunbar, the daughter of a New Hampshire minister. His debt to his parents, and especially to his mother, has perhaps been somewhat underrated, for it is probable that his sturdy uncom- promising temperament, and shrewd mordant humour, were a direct inheritance. " The best parts of Mrs. Thoreau's character," so I learn from one who was born and bred in Concord, "have not been given. She was a woman of commanding presence, never to be ignored in any company. She had a keen sense of humour, and would give an account of a journey to Boston in a stage-coach, or even a walk to the post-office, which, although perhaps tinged a little with romance, would convulse her hearers with laughter, her manner was so dramatic. Of her generosity it was said that no matter how much she I might complain of poverty, she always had something: of value to give to her poorer neighbours.'' Still Vlll SELECTIONS FKOM THOEEAU more important, in its bearing on Henry Thoreau's .character, was the fact that both his parents were /great lovers of nature, and earnest workers for the abolition of negro slavery. " They were twenty years ahead of their time," is the verdict of one who knew them. From 1833 to 1837 "Thoreau was a student at Harvard University, but though he became in this ■^way a good classical scholar, his intellect, so free and ' self-reliant in its scope, was not one which could ! greatly profit by an academical education. It was ' in the school of wild nature that he was destined to graduate. " Though bodily," he wrote, " I have been a member of Harvard University, heart and soul I have been far away among the scenes of my boyhood. Those hours that should have been devoted to study have been spent in scouring the woods and exploring the lakes and streams of my native village. Im- ■ mured within the dark but classic walls, my spirit ' yearned for the sympathy of my old and almost for- gotten friend. Nature/' During the last twenty- five years of his life he indulged this instinctive sympathy to the utmost, in his devoted attachment to the fields and forests of his native Concord. After leaving Harvard he became a prominent member of that transcendentalist circle of which Emerson was the chief, and a personal friend and associate of Bronson Alcott, Ellery Chan- INTKODUCTION ix ning, Margaret Fuller, and Nathaniel Hawthorne. By Emerson in particular he was powerfully and beneficially influenced in his youth and early man- hood, when his hitherto unsuspected genius was somewhat suddenly awakened ; though, in view of the originality and greater practicalness of mind which in later life carried him apart from and beyond the Emersonian theories, it is a complete mistake to regard him as an "imitator" of his friend. I have been assured on good authority that Emerson was in his turn considerably influenced by Thoreau, in the direction of a simpler and austerer mode of thought and living, at a time when the elder man was leaning in a somewhat contrary direction. An amusing story is told that when Thoreau was a mere youth, and some one remarked to his mother on the similarity of his thought to that of the great Concord philosopher, Mrs. Thoreau replied, "Well, you see, Mr. Emerson has been a good deal with David Henry, and may have got ideas from him." What was said as a jest in 1837 might have been said in all truth and seriousness some ten years later. Thoreau's personal appearance is thus described by EUery Channing, the most intimate of his Con- cord friends. " His face once seen could not be for- gotten. The features were quite marked ; the nose aquiline or very Roman, like one of the portraits of X SELECTIONS FKOM THOREAU Ceesar (more like a beak, as was said) ; huge over- hanging brows above the deepest-set blue eyes that could be seen, in certain lights, and in others gray- eyes expressive of all shades of feeling, but never weak or near-sighted; the forehead not unusually broad or high, full of concentrated energy or pur- pose; the mouth with prominent lips, pursed up with meaning and thought when silent, and giving out when open a stream of the most varied and unusual and instructive sayings. His whole figure ' had an active earnestness, as if he had no moment to waste." A good idea of Thoreau's wayward independent mode of living, and of the paradoxical humour which covered, and in some cases concealed, his profound ' sincerity of purpose,J may be gathered from the highly characteristic answer which he returned in 1847 to a Harvard University circular, issued in order to collect statistics concerning the Uves of former students. This remarkable letter runs as follows : — "Am not married. I don't know whether mine is a profession, or a trade, or what not. It is not yet learned, and in every instance has been practised before being studied. The mercantile part of it was begun by myself alone. It is not one but legion. I will give you some of the monster's heads. I am a schoolmaster, a private tutor, a surveyor, a gardener, a farmer, a painter (I mean a house-painter), a carpenter, a mason, a day-labourer a INTRODUCTION xi pencil-maker, a glass-paper-maker, a writer, and some- times a poetaster. If you will act the part of lolus, and apply a hot iron to any of these heads, I shall be greatly obliged to yon. My present employment is to answer such orders as may be expected from so general an advertisement as the above. That is, if I see fit, which is not always the case, for I have found out a way to live without what is commonly called employment or industry, attractive or otherwise. Indeed my steadiest employment, if such it can be called, is to keep myself^t^the top of my . condition, and ready for whatever may turn up in heaven or on_earth. The last two or three years I lived in Concord woods alone, something more than a mile from any neighbour, in a house built entirely by myself. P.S. — I beg that the class will not consider me an object of charity, and if any of them are in want of any pecuniary assistance, and will make known their case to me,(I will engage to give them some advice of more worth than money^ The residence in Walden woods, referred to in the above letter, and narrated in the most popular of his books, was the one episode in Thoreau's career which attracted popular attention, but it should be re- membered that it was an episode only , occupying but two and a half years out of his whole active life. To label him "misanthrope" or_^ermit" on account of the Walden experiment is to misunderstand him completely. (JHe was a hermit when it suited his purposes to be one — a misanthrope never.j A man 1 From " Memorials of the Class of 1837 of Harvard Uni- versity," by Henry Williams, Boston, Mass. xii SELECTIONS FROM THOREAU \pf deep sp iritual instincts, he needed large j),eiiQds_of solitude and retirement ; butTEeTdeaT'tliat he had no regard for human interests and human aspirations is the very reverse of the truth. At that critical and supreme moment in the abolitionist movement when John Brown was arrested and condemned for the insurrection at Harper's Ferry the first voice publicly raised on the convict's behalf was the voice of Thoreau, in the magnificent "Plea for Captain John Brown." " For my own part," he wrote in a second oration on the same subject, '{l commonly attend more to nature than to man, but any affecting human event may blind our eyes to natural objects.^ This is scarcely the sentiment of a misanthrope. A great injustice has been done to Thoreau's memory by the common notion^ hat h e was devoid of huin an symp athies. For this notion the responsibility must partly rm~5n Emerson, who, when editing the posthumous volume oi Tetters in 1865, made the unfortunate mistake of omitting the domestic cgr- respondence which showed Thoreau in his most neigh- bourly and affectionate mood, in order to exhibit in the more formal epistles " a perfect piece of stoicism." The recent publication of Thoreau's F amiliar Lette rs has now corrected- tliis„im.ppess}pn, but it will doubtless be many years before it is finally removed. The truth is that Thoreau, despite his sternness of temperament and bluntness of speech, was at heart a man of INTRODUCTION xiii profound sensibility and_feeling, as was proved, for example, in the extreme tenderness of his relations MiMiiiiiii I III! Ill miir'iWiiiwifi' -III with hi s broth er John, the brother who was his companion in the famous "Week on the Concord Eiver," and whose early death was a cause of lifelong grief to the survivor. A discerning reader will not fail to note the true^humanityj)f__Thoreau, although there" is, be it admitted, a complete absence of t he " am iability " that needs to be expressed in words. Such are the readers for whom he lived and wrote. ('I think of those amongst men," he say s, "wh o will know that I love th^m, though I tell them not.'' It is unnecessary here to relate the details of his life at Concord, so uneventful in external incidents, so full of spiritual adventure and inner experience. His Walden and JVeek on the Concord cund Merrimack Rivers have already been referred to ; the other most notable "Excursions'' are those described in The Maine Woods and Cape Cod. With the exception of such brief absences, his years were wholly spent at Concord, where he lived in his father's house, and supported himself by( land-surveying, pencil-making, or one of the many crafts of which he had made him- self master. He died from consumption on 6th May 1862, and the family, which was never a robust stock, is now extinct. It is probable that nothing but simple living and open-air habits could have prolonged his life to the term of forty-five years. xiv SELECTIONS FROM THOREAU Let us now turn to tlia ^philosophy of Thoreau's writings. It has been recorded that when Dr. Samuel Johnson was invited to take a country walk he replied, "Sir, one green field is like another green field; I like to look at men." Thoreau's attitude towards nature and natural scenery was the exact opposite of this. He found in nature not the dull, uniform, inanimate thing which most town-dwellers, and it is to be feared some country-dwellers, too often conceive it to be, but a living entity, possessing its own distinctive moods and affections, and animated j with as conscious and active a spirit as himself. ' He rejoiced in the belief that mankind is not the sole' object of concern to the spirit of the universe. Like St. Francis, he could never look on the animals as divided from man by some arbitrary line of demarca- tion, but sympathised with them as his " townsmen and fellow-creatures," who, as he said, possessed the " character and importance of another order of men." Accordingly his whole relation to nature and natural history differed widely from that of the collector and scientist, whose dominant impulse on seeing a beautiful bird or beast is to kill and stuff it — to knock it down first, and then, as the taxider- mists say, to " set it up " afterwards. Thoreau was distinctly not a professor of this anatomical method of classification. "I think," he said, ("the mos_t important requisite in describing an animal is to be INTRODUCTION XV sure that you give its character and spirit, for in that you have, without error, the sum and effect of all its parts, known and unknown. J You must tell what it is to man ; surely the most important part of an animal is its anima, its vital spirit, on which is based its character and all the particulars by which it most concerns us. Yet most scientific books which treat of animals leave this out altogether, and what they describe are, as it were, phenomena of dead matter." That aspect of natural scenery which especially attracted Thoreau's temperament was the wild. He turned back from the vanities and disappointments of social intercourse to draw (renewed Jiealth and vitality from the far recesses of nature) Alike in ethics, in science, and in literature, he looked to wildness as(supplying the most essentiaL element of genius); a creed which may be summed up in one of those incomparably terse and suggestive images which lie scattered through his pages. " As the wild duck is more swift and beautiful than the tame, so is the wild — the mallard — thought, which 'mid falling dews, wings it way above the fens." The simplicity which Thoreau preached and (/practised was intimately connected with this love of the wild. An instinctive persona l preference afforded the primary reason for his simplification of life — it was as natural to him to be frugal in his habits as to prefer the wildness of the Concord woods to the 6 XVI SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU academic coteries of Boston. This should be sufficient answer to the charge of "asceticism" which is some- times brought against him by critics who cannot believe that an abstinence from their comforts and their luxuries can be due to any other cause.) It would be difficult, perhaps, to instance a man who was less of an ascetic than Thoreau -yht knew his own mind, he determined from the first to live his own life, and when he renounced certain things which custom proclaims to be necessary, we may be quite sure that he did so from a wish to vivify, not mortify, the keenness of his enjoyment. And here arises an important objection which has been urged, from time to time, against every apostle of simplicity — against Rousseau in France, and Thoreau in America, and Edward Carpenter in Eng- land. Does not the " return to nature," it is asked, imply a corresponding relapse from civilisation toj savagery 1 Is it not retrogressive, reactionary, unJ scientific — in a word, impossible ? To which it may at once be answered that the naturalness which Thoreau advocates cannot, if one takes the trouble to note his own clear definition of it, be mistaken for a state akin to barbarism or incompatible with the highest and truest culture. He explicitly avows his belief that civilisation is " a real advance in the condition ofjman," but adds that he wishes " to show at what a I ( sacrifice this advantage is at present obtained, and to INTRODUCTION xvii suggest that we may possibly so live as to secure all the advantage without suffering any of the disadvan- tage^ The destructive side of Thoreau's teaching consists in a prolonged, deliberate, and merciless ex- position of these disadvantages of civilisation, and of the numerous sophisms that underlie so large a portion of modern society. But he is no advocate of a mere return to barbarism, the question proposed by him being whether it is possible r to combine the hardi- ness of the savage with the intellectualness of the civilised man." I have spoken of the destructive side of Thoreau's! teaching, but his teaching was not destructive only. ! In an age ot^ increasing artificiality and restless self- indulgence he preached a gospel of healthfulness, simplicity, and contentment — the gospel of natural living, 'of the open air.y(^He taught men to trust their real native instincts, and to distrust the in- numerable artificial wants with which custom and tradition have everywhere surrounded us J to distin- guish betweer^^genuine taste and acquired habitj As the Greek philosopher exclaimed, " How many things there are that I do not desire ! " so Thoreau insisted that_!i£Liaaii-is rich in proportion to the number of things which he can afford to let alone." It may be said that a savage also is content to let alone those things ; but it must be remembered that a savage spends the leisure thus obtained in sleeping on a mat, xviii SELECTIONS FROM THOREAU whereas Thoreau had other means for the disposal of his spare hours. " To what end," he says in his Letters, "do I lead a simple life at all? That I may teach others to simplify their lives, and so all our lives be 'simplified' merely, like an algebraic/ formula? Or not, rather, that I may make use of the ground I have cleared, to live more worthily \ and profitably ? " This gospel of naturalness, strange enough in itself to the ordinary member of society, was made still stranger by the manner in which Thoreau intro- duced it. His peculiarities of character and speech, the keen thrifty incisiveness of his paradoxical utter- ances — barbed like his favourite Indian arrow-heads — all militated against the early acceptance of his novel principles, and Thoreau was not the man to explain himself to his puzzled audience. For the time, therefore, his pointed epigrams had the efiect, and still have the effect, of making society look and feel like the fretful porcupine in its attitude towards him. Local prejudice was strong against this pre- sumptuous village moralist, this "Yankee Diogenes" or " Eural Humbug," as contemporary critics styled him, who dared call in/ question the utility of nine- tenths of the most cherished institutions of mankind' ; and, as it is always cheering to believe that uncom- fortable prophets whose admonitions trouble us are themselves the victims of depravity or madness, a INTRODUCTION XIX phantom Thoreau was soon forthcoming (under the usual working of the law of demand and supply), who was so contrived as to fit in precisely with the preconceived ideas of the Boston public. Insincerity and self-conceit, cynicism and misanthropy, were the qualities with which this unhappy lay figure was most liberally endowed. If this were Thoreau, we might well join with Mr. Lowell and the other critics who have mistaken the phantom for the man in their contempt for a personality so contemptible — a mix- ture of indolence, misanthropy, and self-conceit. CBut fortunately the writings of Thoreau^hemselves pro- vide the most specific refutation of the error. It is hoped that the following Selections, which, though moderate in compass, are typical of Thoreau in almost all his moods and aspects, and contain much that is new to English readers, may be instru- mental in quickening a more just and liberal appre- ciation. I have endeavoured so to choose and arrange the passages as to make them representative not only of their author's strongly-marked opinions on morals, society, politics, literature, and natural history, but also of the various influences and incidents that chiefly aff"ected his life — the scenery of Concord, his study of Indian lore,(his_sojourn at 'sWaldem his daily walks, his longer excursions by river, forest, or sea-coast, his solitary moods, and his genial moods (as in his friendly " crack " with the XX SELECTIONS FIIOM THOKEA.U Wellfleet oysterman), his revolt against the State of Massachusetts for its sanction of slavery, his unhesi- tating championship of John Brown at a moment which tried as in a fiery furnace the mettle of human character. As a writer, Thoreau's great qualities stand consjiicuous on every page, admitted even by those critics who, like Mr. Lowell, are least in sym- pathy with his aims. Not less remarkable, though as yet but half recognised by the public, are his noble qualities as a man. H. S. Salt. CONTENTS PAGE Introduction . . . . . v Prom The Week on the Concord and Merrimack Rivers— CoNOOED River . . . . 1 Sunday Thoushts . .... 13 Friendship 29 From Walden, or Life in the Woods — Where I Lived and what I Lived for . 42 Higher Laws . . . .64 House Warming . . ... 80 Prom The Maine Woods — Primeval Nature . . 89 The Murder of the Moose . . 103 Forest Phenomena . . 118 Prom Gape God — The Shipwreck . . . 124 The Beach .... .136 The Wellfleet Oysterman . 151 xxii SELECTIONS FEOM THOBEAU From Excursions — page Natural History of Massachusetts . 168 Walking .198 From Anti-Slavery and Reform Papers — Civil Disobedience 238 A Plea fok Captain John Brown . . 267 Life without Principle .... 301 Portrait of Thoreau, from a Daguerreotype made about 1857, and photograplied by Mr. A. W. Hosmer of Con- cord, Mass. . . Frontispiece coNCOED eivp:e The Musketaquid, or Grass-ground Eiver, though probably as old as the Nile or Euphrates, did not begin to have a place in civilised history until the fame of its grassy meadows and its iish attracted settlers out of England in 1635, when it received the other but kindred name of Concord from the first planta- tion on its banks, which appears to have been commenced in a spirit of peace and harmony. It will be Grass-ground Eiver as long as grass grows and water runs here ; it will be Concord Eiver only while men lead peaceable lives on its banks. To an extinct race it was grass-ground, where they hunted and fished, and it is still perennial grass-ground to Con- cord farmers, who own the Great Meadows, and get the hay from year to year. " One branch of it," according to the historian of Concord, for I love to quote so good authority, " rises in the south part of Hopkinton, and another from a pond and a large cedar-swamp in Westborough," and flowing between Hopkinton and Southborough, through Framingham, and between Sudbury and Wayland, where it is S> B 2 SELECTIONS FKOM THOEEAU sometimes called Sudbury Eiver, it enters Concord at the south part of the town, and after receiving the North or Assabeth Eiver, which has its source a little farther to the north and west, goes out at the north- east angle, and flowing between Bedford and Carlisle, and through Billerica, empties into the Merrimack ' at Lowell. In Concord it is, in summer, from four to fifteen feet deep, and from one hundred to three hundred feet wide, but in the spring freshets, when it overflows its banks, it is in some places nearly a mile wide. Between Sudbury and Wayland the meadows acquire their greatest breadth, and when covered with water, they form a handsome chain of shallow vernal lakes, resorted to by numerous gulls and ducks. Just above Sherman's Bridge, between these towns, is the largest expanse, and when the wind blows freshly in a raw March day, heaving up the surface into dark and sober billows or regular swells, skirted as it is in the distance with alder- swamps and smoke-like maples, it looks like a smaller Lake Huron, and is very pleasant and exciting for a landsman to row or sail over. The farm-houses along the Sudbury shore, which rises gently to a considerable height, command fine water prospects at this season. The shore is more flat on the Wayland side, and this town is the greatest loser by the flood. Its farmers tell me that thousands of acres are flooded now, since the dams have been erected, where they remember to have seen the white honeysuckle or clover growing once, and they could go dry with shoes only in summer. Now there is nothing but CONCORD EITEE 3 blue-joint and sedge and cut-grass there, standing in water all the year round. For a long time, they made the most of the driest season to get their hay, working sometimes till nine o'clock at night, sedu- lously paring with their scythes in the twilight round the hummocks left by the ice; but now it is not worth the getting when they can come at it, and they look sadly round to their wood-lots and upland as a last resource. It is worth the while to make a voyage up this stream, if you go no farther than Sudbury, only to see how much country there is in the rear of us; great hills, and a hundred brooks, and farm-houses, and barns, and haystacks, you never saw before, and men everywhere — Sudbury, that is Southhorough men, and Wayland, and Mne-Acre-Corner men, and Bound Eock, where four towns bound on a rock in the river, Lincoln, Wayland, Sudbury, Concord. Many waves are there agitated by the wind, keeping nature fresh, the spray blowing in your face, reeds and rushes waving ; ducks by the hundred, all uneasy in the surf, in the raw wind, just ready to rise, and now going off with a clatter and a whistling like riggers straight for Labrador, flying against the stiff gale with reefed wings, or else circling round first, with all their paddles briskly moving, just over the surf, to recon- noitre you before they leave these parts ; gulls wheeling overhead, musk-rats swimming for dear life, wet and cold, vidth no fire to warm them by that you know of ; their laboured homes rising here and there like haystacks ; and countless mice and moles 4 SELECTIONS FKOM THOEBAU and winged titmice along the sunny windy shore; cranberries tossed on the waves and heaving up on the beach, their little red skiffs beating about among the alders; — such healthy natural tumult as proves the last day is not yet at hand. And there stand all around the alders, and birches, and oaks, and maples full of glee and sap, holding in their buds until the waters subside. You shall perh'apsTun aground on Cranberry Island, only some spires of last year's pipe- grass above water, to show where the danger is, and get as good a freezing there as anywhere on the North-west Coast. I never voyaged so far in all my life. You shall see men you never heard of before, whose names you don't know, going away down through the meadows with long ducking-guns, with water-tight boots wading through the fowl-meadow grass, on bleak, wintry, distant shores, with guns at half-cock ; and they shall see teal, blue-winged, green- winged sheldrakes, whistlers, black ducks, ospreys, and many other wild and noble sights, before night, such as they who sit in parlours never dream of. You shall see rude and sturdy, experienced and wise men, keeping their castles, or teaming up their sum- mer's wood, or chopping alone in the woods, — men fuller of talk and rare adventure in the sun and wind and rain, than a chestnut is of meat ; who were out not only in '75 and 1812, but have been out every day of their lives ; greater men than Homer, or Chaucer, or Shakespeare, only they never got time to say so ; they never took to the way of writing. Look at their fields, and imagine what they might write, if CONCORD EIVBR 5 ever they should put pen to paper. Or what have they not written on the face of the earth already, clearing, and burning, and scratching, and harrowing, and ploughing, and subsoiling, in and in, and out and out, and over and over, again and again, erasing what they had already written for want of parchment. As yesterday and the historical ages are past, as the work of to-day is present, so some flitting per- spectives and demi-experiences of the life that is in nature are in time veritably future, or rather outside to time, perennial, young, divine, in the wind and rain which never die. The respectable folks, — Where dwell they 1 They whisper in the oaks, And they sigh in the hay ; Summer and winter, night and day, Out on the meadow, there dwell they. They never die. Nor snivel, nor cry, Nor ask our pity With a wet eye. A sound estate they ever mend, To every asker readily lend ; To the ocean wealth, To the meadow health, To Time his length, To the rooks strength, To the stars light. To the weary night. To the busy day, To the idle play ; And so their good cheer never ends, For all are their debtors, and all their friends.^ ' It should be stated, with reference to the poems with which 6 SELECTIONS FKOM THOBBAU Concord Eiver is remarkable for the gentleness of its current, which is scarcely perceptible, and some have referred to its influence the proverbial modera- tion of the inhabitants of Concord, as exhibited in the Revolution, and on later occasions. It has been pro- posed that the town should adopt for its coat of arms a field verdant, with the Concord circling nine times round. I have read that a descent of an eighth of an inch in a mile is suflacient to produce a flow. Our river has, probably, very near the smallest allowance. The story is current, at any rate, though I believe that strict history will not bear it out, that the only bridge ever carried away on the main branch, within the limits of the town, was driven up stream by the wind. But wherever it makes a sudden bend it is shallower and swifter, and asserts its title to be called a river. Compared with the other tributaries of the Merrimack, it appears to have been properly named Musketaquid, or Meadow River, by the Indians. For the most part, it creeps through broad meadows, adorned with scattered oaks, where the cranberry is found in abundance, covering the ground like a moss-bed. A row of sunken dwarf willows borders the stream on one or both sides, while at a greater distance the meadow is skirted with maples, alders, and other fluviatile trees, overrun with the grape- vine, which bears fruit in its season, purple, red, white, and other grapes. Still farther from the stream, on the edge of the firm land, are seen the Thoreau frequently interspersed his essays, that those which are distinguished by inverted commas are quotations from other writers, the rest by Thoreau himself. CONCORD EIVER 7 gray and white dwellings of the inhabitants. Ac- cording to the valuation of 1831, there were in Concord two thousand one hundred and eleven acres, or about one seventh of the whole territory in meadow ; this standing next in the list after pastur- age and unimproved lands, and, judging from the returns of previous years, the meadow is not re- claimed so fast as the woods are cleared. Let us here read what old Johnson says of these meadows in his Wonder-workinfj Providence, which gives the account of New England from 1628 to 1652, and see how matters looked to him. He says of the Twelfth Church of Christ gathered at Concord : " This town is seated upon a fair fresh river, whose rivulets are filled with fresh marsh, and her streams with fish, it being a branch of that large river of Merrimack. Allwifes and shad in their season come up to this town, but salmon and dace cannot come up, by reason of the rocky falls, which causeth their meadows to lie much covered with water, the which these people, together with their neighbour town, have several times essayed to cut through but cannot, yet it may be turned another way with an hundred pound charge as it appeared.'' As to their farming he says : " Hav- ing laid out their estate upon cattle at 5 to 20 pound a cow, when they came to winter them with inland hay, and feed upon such wild fother as was never cut before, they could not hold out the winter, but, ordinarily the first or second year after their coming up to a new plantation, many of their cattle died." And this from the same author Of the Planting 8 SELECTIONS FKOM THOEEAD of the I9th Church in the Mattachusets' Government, called Sudbury: "This year [does he mean 1654] the town and church of Christ at Sudbury began to have the first foundation stones laid, taking up her station in the inland country, as her elder sister Concord had formerly done, lying further up the same river, being furnished with great plenty of fresh marsh, but, it lying very low is much indamaged with land floods, insomuch that when the summer proves wet they lose part of their hay ; yet are they so suffi- ciently provided that they take in cattle of other towns to winter." The sluggish artery of the Concord meadows steals thus unobserved through the town, without a murmur or a pulse-beat, its general course from south-west to north-east, and its length about fifty miles ; a huge volume of matter, ceaselessly rolling through the plains and valleys of the substantial earth with the moccasined tread of an Indian warrior, making haste from the high places of the earth to its ancient reservoir. The murmurs of many a famous river on the other side of the globe reach even to us here, as to more distant dwellers on its banks ; many a poet's stream floating the helms and shields of heroes on its bosom. The Xanthus or Scamander is not a mere dry channel and bed of a mountain torrent, but fed by the everflowing springs of fame — " And thou Simois, that as an arrowe, clere Through Troy rennest, aie downward to the sea " ; and I trust that I may be allowed to associate our CONCOED KIVEE 9 muddy but much abused Concord River with the most famous in history. " Sure there are poets which did never dream Upon Parnassus, nor did taste the stream Of Helicon ; we therefore may suppose Those made not poets, but the poets those. " The Mississippi, the Ganges, and the Nile, those journeying atoms from the Rocky Mountains, the Himmaleh, and Mountains of the Moon, have a kind of personal importance in the annals of the vrorld. The heavens are not yet drained over their sources, but the Mountains of the Moon still send their annual tribute to the Pasha without fail, as they did to the Pharaohs, though he must collect the rest of his revenue at the point of the sword. Rivers must have been the guides which conducted the footsteps of the first travellers. They are the constant lure, when they flow by our doors, to distant enterprise and adventure, and, by a natural impulse, the dwellers on their banks will at length accompany their currents to the lowlands of the globe, or explore at their invitation the interior of continents. They are the natural highways of all nations, not only levelling the ground and removing obstacles from the path of the traveller, quenching his thirst and bearing him on their bosoms, but conducting him through the most interesting scenery, the most populous portions of the globe, and where the animal and vegetable kingdoms attain their greatest per- fection. I had often stood on the banks of the Concord, 10 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU watching the lapse of the current, an emblem of all progress, following the same law with the system, with time, and all that is made; the weeds at the bottom gently bending down the stream, shaken by the watery wind, still planted where their seeds had sunk, but ere long to die and go down likewise ; the shining pebbles, not yet anxious to better their condition, the chips and weeds, and occasional logs and stems of trees that floated past, fulfilling their fate, were objects of singular interest to me, and at last I resolved to launch myself on its bosom and float whither it would bear me. At length, on Saturday, the last day of August, 1839, we two, brothers, and natives of Concord, weighed anchor in this river port ; for Concord, too, lies under the sun, a port of entry and departure for the bodies as well as the souls of men ; one shore at least exempted from all duties but such as an honest man will gladly discharge. A warm drizzling rain had obscured the morning, and threatened to delay our voyage, but at length the leaves and grass were dried, and it came out a mild afternoon, as serene and fresh as if Nature were maturing some greater scheme of her own. After this long dripping and oozing from every pore, she began to respire again more healthily than ever. So with a vigorous shove we launched our boat from the bank, while the flags and bulrushes courtesied a God-speed, and dropped silently down the stream. Our boat, which had cost us a week's labour in CONCOED EIVEE 11 the spring, was in form like a fisherman's dory, fifteen feet long by three and a half in breadth at the widest part, painted green below, with a border of blue, with reference to the two elements in which it was to spend its existence. It had been loaded the evening before at our door, half a mile from the ri-ver, with potatoes and melons from a patch which we had cultivated, and a few utensils, and was provided with wheels in order to be rolled around falls, as well as with two sets of oars, and several slender poles for shoving in shallow places, and also two masts, one of which served for a tent-pole at night; for a bufialo-skin was to be our bed, and a tent of cotton cloth our roof. It was strongly built, but heavy, and hardly of better model than usual. If rightly made, a boat would be a sort of amphibious animal, a creature of two elements, related by one half its structure to some swift and shapely fish, and by the other to some strong-winged and graceful bird. The fish shows where there should be the greatest breadth of beam and depth in the hold ; its fins direct where to set the oars, and the tail gives some hint for the form and position of the rudder. The bird shows how to rig and trim the sails, and what form to give to the prow that it may balance the boat, and divide the air and water best. These hints we had but partially obeyed. But the eyes, though they are no sailors, will never be satisfied with any model, how- ever fashionable, which does not answer all the requisitions of art. However, as art is all of a ship but the wood, and yet the wood alone will rudely 12 SELECTIONS FEOM THOEEAU serve the purpose of a ship, so our boat, being of wood, gladly availed itself of the old law that the heavier shall float the lighter, and though a dull water-fowl, proved a sufficient buoy for our purpose. " Were it the will of Heaven, an osier bough Were vessel safe enough the seas to plough. " Some village friends stood upon a promontory lower down the stream to wave us a last farewell ; but we, having already performed these shore rites, with excusable reserve, as befits those who are embarked on unusual enterprises, who behold but speak not, silently glided past the firm lands of Concord, both peopled cape and lonely summer meadow, with steady sweeps. And yet we did unbend so far as to let our guns speak for us, when at length we had swept out of sight, and thus left the woods to ring again with their echoes ; and it may be many russet-clad children, lurking in those broad meadows, with the bittern and the woodcock and the rail, though wholly concealed by brakes and hard-hack and meadow-sweet, heard our salute that afternoon. SUNDAY THOUGHTS As we passed under the last bridge over the canal, just before reaching the Merrimack, the people coming out of church paused to look at us from above, and apparently, so strong is custom, indulged in some heathenish comparisons ; but we were the truest observers of this sunny day. According to Hesiod, "The seventh is a holy day, For then Latona hrought forth golden-rayed Apollo, " and by our reckoning this was the seventh day of the week, and not the first. I find among the papers of an old Justice of the Peace and Deacon of the town of Concord, this singular memorandum, which is worth preserving as a relic of an ancient custom. After reforming the spelling and grammar, it runs as follows : " Men that travelled with teams on the Sabbath, Dec. 18th, 1803, were Jeremiah Eichardson and Jonas Parker, both of Shirley. They had teams with rigging such as is used to carry barrels, and they were travelling westward. Eichardson was questioned by the Hon. Ephraim Wood, Esq., and he 14 SBLEOTIONS FEOM THOEEAU said that Jonas Parker was his fellow-traveller, and he further said that a Mr. Longley was his employer, who promised to bear him out." We were the men that were gliding northward, this 1st September 1839, with still team, and rigging not the most convenient to carry barrels, unquestioned by any Squire or Church Deacon and ready to bear ourselves out if need were. In the latter part of the seventeenth century, according to the historian of Dunstable, "Towns were directed to erect 'a cage' near the meeting-house, and in this all offenders against the sanctity of the Sabbath were confined." Society has relaxed a little from its strictness, one would say, but I presume that there is not less religion than formerly. If the ligature is found to be loosened in one part, it is only drawn the tighter in another. You can hardly convince a man of an error in a lifetime, but must content yourself with the reflection that the progress of science is slow. If he is not convinced, his grandchildren may be. The geologists tell us that it took one hundred years to pi'ove that fossils are organic, and one hundred and fifty more, to prove that they are not to be referred to the Noachian deluge. I am not sure but I should betake myself in extremities to the liberal divinities of Greece, rather than to my country's God. Jehovah, though with us he has acquired new attributes, is more absolute and unapproachable, but hardly more divine, than Jove. He is not so much of a gentle- man, not so gracious and catholic, he does not exert so intimate and genial an influence on nature, as SUNDAY THOUGHTS 15 many a god of the Greeks. I should fear the infinite power and inflexible justice of the almighty mortal hardly as yet apotheosised, so wholly masculine, with no sister Juno, no Apollo, no Venus, nor Minerva, to intercede for me, dvfim (j)vX,^ovaa re, Kr^Zofiivrj re. The Grecian are youthful and erring and fallen gods, with the vices of men, but in many important respects essentially of the divine race. In my Pantheon, Pan still reigns in his pristine glory, with his ruddy face, his flowing beard, and his shaggy body, his pipe and his crook, his nymph Echo, and his chosen daughter lambe ; for the great god Pan is not dead, as was rumoured. No god ever dies. Perhaps of all the gods of New England and of ancient Greece, I am most constant at his shrine. It seems to me that the god that is commonly worshipped in civilised countries is not at all divine, though he bears a divine name, but is the overwhelm- ing authority and respectability of mankind com- bined. Men reverence one another, not yet God. If I thought that I could speak with discrimination and impartiality of the nations of Christendom, I should praise them, but it tasks me too much. They seem to be the most civil and humane, but I may be mistaken. Every people have gods to suit their cir- cumstances ; the Society Islanders had a god called Toahitu, " in shape like a dog ; he saved such as were in danger of falling from rocks and trees." I think that we can do without him, as we have not much climbing to do. Among them a man could make himself a god out of a piece of wood in a 16 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU few minutes, whicli would frighten him out of his wits. I fancy that some indefatigable spinster of the old school, who had the supreme felicity to be bom in " days that tried men's souls," hearing this, may say with Nestor, another of the old school, "But you are younger than I. For time was when I conversed with greater men than you. For not at any time have I seen such men, nor shall see them, as Perithous, and Dryas, and Troi/Meva Xawv," that is probably Washington, sole " Shepherd of the People." And when Apollo has now six times rolled westward, or seemed to roll, and now for the seventh time shows his face in the east, eyes well-nigh glazed, long glassed, which have fluctuated only between lamb's wool and worsted, explore ceaselessly some good sermon book. For six days shalt thou labour and do all thy knitting, but on the seventh, forsooth, thy reading. Happy we who can bask in this warm September sun, which illumines all creatures, as well when they rest as when they toil, not without a feeling of gratitude ; whose life is as blameless, how blameworthy soever it may be, on the Lord's Mona- day as on his Suna-day. There are various, nay, incredible faiths; why should we be alarmed at any of them ? What man believes, G-od believes. Long as I have lived, and many blasphemers as I have heard and seen, I have never yet heard or witnessed any direct and conscious blasphemy or irreverence ; but of indirect and habit- ual, enough. Where is the man who is guilty of SUNDAY THOUGHTS 17 direct and personal insolence to Him that made him? One memorable addition to the old mythology is due to this era, — the Christian fable. With what pains, and tears, and blood these centuries have woven this and added it to the mythology of man- kind. The new Prometheus. With what miraculous consent, and patience, and persistency has this mythus been stamped on the memory of the race ! It would seem as if it were in the progress of our mythology to dethrone Jehovah, and crown Christ in his stead. If it is not a tragical life we live, then I know not what to call it. Such a story as that of Jesus Christ, — the history of Jerusalem, say, being a part of the Universal History. The naked, the embalmed, un- buried death of Jerusalem amid its desolate hills,^ think of it. In Tasso's poem I trust some things are sweetly buried. Consider the snappish tenacity with which they preach Christianity still. What are time and space to Christianity, eighteen hundred years, and a new world ? — that the humble life of a Jewish peasant should have force to make a New York bishop so bigoted. Forty-four lamps, the gift of kings, now burning in a place called the Holy Sepulchre ; — a church-bell ringing; — some unaffected tears shed by a pilgrim on Mount Calvary within the week. — "Jerusalem, Jerusalem, when I forget thee, may my right hand forget her cunning." " By the waters of Babylon there we sat down, and we wept when we remembered Zion." I trust that some may be as near and dear to 18 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU Buddha, or Christ, or Swedenborg, who are without the pale of their churches. It is not necessary to be Christian to appreciate the beauty and significance of the life of Christ. I know that some will have hard thoughts of me, when they hear their Christ named beside my Buddha, yet I am sure that I am willing they should love their Christ more than my Buddha, for the love is the main thing, and I like him too. "God is the letter Ku, as well as Khu." Why need Christians be still intolerant and superstitious ? The simple-minded sailors were unwilling to cast over- board Jonah at his own request. — " Where is this love become in later age ? Alas ! 'tis gone in endless pilgrimage From hence, and never to return, I doubt, Till revolution wheel those times about. " One man says, — " The world's a popular disease, that reigns Within the froward heart and frantic brains Of poor distempered mortals." Another, that " all the world's a stage, And all the men and women merely players." The world is a strange place for a playhouse to stand within it. Old Drayton thought that a man that lived here, and would be a poet, for instance, should have in him certain " brave, translunary things," and a "fine madness " should possess his brain. Certainly it were as well, that he might be up to the occasion. That is a superfluous wonder, which Dr. Johnson expresses at the assertion of Sir Thomas Browne that "his life has been a miracle of thirty years, which to SUNDAY THOUGHTS 19 relate, were not history but a piece of poetry, and would sound like a fable." The wonder is, rather, that all men do not assert as much. That would be a rare praise, if it were true, which was addressed to Francis Beaumont, — "Spectators sate part in your tragedies.'' Think what a mean and wretched place this world is ; that half the time we have to light a lamp that we may see to live in it. This is half our life. Who would undertake the enterprise if it were all ? And, pray, what more has day to offer 1 A lamp that burns more clear, a purer oil, say winter-strained, that so we may pursue our idleness with less obstruction. Bribed with a little sunlight and a few prismatic tints, we bless our Maker, and stave off his wrath with hymns. I make ye an offer, Ye gods, hear the scoffer, The scheme will not hurt you, If ye will find goodness, I will find virtue. Though I am your creature, And child of your nature, I have pride still unbended, And blood undescended. Some free independence, And my own descendants. I cannot toil blindly, Though ye behave kindly. And I swear by the rood, I'll be slave to no God. If ye will deal plainly, I will strive mainly, If ye w.ill discover, Great plans to your lover. And give him a sphere' Somewhat larger than here. 20 SELECTIONS FEOM THOKBAU " Verily, my angels ! I was abashed on account of my servant, who had no Providence but me ; there- fore did I pardon him." — The Gulistan of Sadi. Most people with whom I talk, men and women even of some originality and genius, have their scheme of the universe all cut and dried, — very dry, I assure you, to hear, dry enough to burn, dry-rotted and powder-post, methinks, — which they set up be- tween you and them in the shortest intercourse ; an ancient and tottering frame with all its boards blown off. They do not walk without their bed. Some, to me, seemingly very unimportant and unsubstantial things and relations, are for them everlastingly settled, — as Father, Son, and Holy Ghost, and the like. These are like the everlasting hills to them. But in all my wanderings I never came across the least vestige of authority for these things. They have not left so distinct a trace as the delicate flower of a remote geological period on the coal in my grate. The wisest man preaches no doctrines; he has no scheme ; he sees no rafter, not even a cobweb, against the heavens. It is clear sky. If I ever see more clearly at one time than at another, the medimi] through which I see is clearer. To see from earth tc heaven, and see there standing, still a fixture, that old Jewish scheme ! What right have you to hold up this obstacle to my understanding you, to youi understanding me ! You did not invent it ; it was imposed on you. Examine your authority. Ever Christ, we fear, had his scheme, his conformity t( SUNDAY THOUGHTS 21 tradition, which slightly vitiates his teaching. He had not swallowed all formulas. He preached some mere doctrines. As for me, Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob are now only the subtilest imaginable essences, which would not stain the morning sky. Your scheme must be the framework of the universe; all other schemes will soon be ruins. The perfect Grod in his revelations of himself has never got to the length of one such proposition as you, his prophets, state. Have you learned the alphabet of heaven and can count three 1 Do you know the number of God's family? Can you put mysteries into words? Do you presume to fable of the ineffable? Pray, what geographer are you, that speak of heaven's topo- graphy 1 Whose friend are you that speak of God's personality? Do you. Miles Howard, think that he has made you his confidant ? Tell me of the height of the mountains of the moon, or of the diameter of space, and I may believe you, but of the secret history of the Almighty, and I shall pronounce thee mad. Yet we have a sort of family history of our God, — so have the Tahitians of theirs, — and some old poet's grand imagination is imposed on us as adamantine everlasting truth, and God's own words. Pythagoras says, truly enough, "A true assertion respecting God, is an assertion of God " ; but we may well doubt if there is any example of this in literature. The New Testament is an invaluable book, though I confess to having been slightly prejudiced against it in my very early days by the church and the Sabbath school, so that it seemed, before I read it, to be the 22 SELECTIONS EEOM THOEEAU yellowest book in the catalogue. Yet I early escaped from their meshes. It was hard to get the comment- aries out of one's head and taste its true flavour.— I think that Pilgrim's Progress is the best sermon which has been preached from this text ; almost all other sermons that I have heard, or heard of, have been but poor imitations of this. — It would be a poor story to be prejudiced against the Life of Christ because the book has been edited by Christians. In fact, I love this book rarely, though it is a sort of castle in the air to me, which I am permitted to dream. Having come to it so recently and freshly, it has the greater charm, so that I cannot find any to talk with about it. I never read a novel, they have so little real life and thought in them. The reading which I love, best is the scriptures of the several nations, though it happens that I am better ac- quainted with those of the Hindoos, the Chinese, and the Persians, than of the Hebrews, which I have come to last. Give me one of these Bibles and you have silenced me for a while. When I recover the use of my tongue, I am wont to worry my neighbours with the new sentences ; but commonly they cannot see that there is any wit in them. Such has been my experience with the New Testament. I have not yet got to the crucifixion, I have read it over so many times. I should love dearly to read it aloud to my friends, some of whom are seriously inclined ; it is so good, and I am sure that they have never heard it, it fits their case exactly, and we should enjoy it so much together, — but I instinctively despair of getting SUNDAY THOUGHTS 23 their ears. They soon show, by signs not to be mis- taken, that it is inexpressibly wearisome to them. I do not mean to imply that I am any better than my neighbours ; for, alas ! I know that I am only as good, though I love better books than they. It is remarkable that, notwithstanding the univer- sal favour with which the New Testament is out- wardly received, and even the bigotry with which it is defended, there is no hospitality shown to, there is no appreciation of, the order of truth with which it deals. I know of no book that has so few readers. There is none so truly strange, and heretical, and un- popular. To Christians, no less than Greeks and Jews, it is foolishness and a stumbling-block. There are, indeed, severe things in it which no man should read aloud more than once. — " Seek first the kingdom of heaven." — "Lay not up for yourselves treasures on earth." — "If thou wilt be perfect, go and sell that thou hast, and give to the poor, and thou shalt have treasure in heaven." — "For what is a man profited, if he shall gain the whole world, and lose his own soul ? or what shall a man give in exchange for his soul?" — Think of this, Yankees! — "Verily, I say unto you, if ye have faith as a grain of mustard seed, ye shall say unto this mountain, Eemove hence to yonder place ; and it shall remove ; and nothing shall be impossible unto you." — Think of repeating these things to a New England audience ! thirdly, fourthly, fifteenthly, till there are three barrels of sermons ! Who, without cant, can read them aloud? Who, without cant, can hear them, and not go out of the 24 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEATJ meeting-house? They never were read, they never were heard. Let but one of these sentences be rightly - read from any pulpit in the land, and there would not be left one stone of that meeting-house upon another. Yet the New Testament treats of man and man's so-called spiritual affairs too exclusively, and is too constantly moral and personal, to alone content me, who am not interested solely in man's religious or moral nature, or in man even. I have not the most definite designs on the future. Absolutely speaking, Do unto others as you would that they should do unto you, is by no means a golden rule, but the best of current silver. An honest man would have but little occasion for it. It is golden not to have any rule at all in such a case. The book has never been written which is to be accepted without any allow- ance. Christ was a sublime actor on the stage of the world. He knew what he was thinking of when he said, "Heaven and earth shall pass away, but my words shall not pass away." I draw near to him at such a time. Yet he taught mankind but imperfectly how to live ; his thoughts were all directed toward another world. There is another kind of success than his. Even here we have a sort of living to get, and must buffet it somewhat longer. There are various tough problems yet to solve, and we must make shift to live, betwixt spirit and matter, such a human life as we can. A healthy man, with steady employment, as wood- chopping at fifty cents a cord, and a camp in the SUNDAY THOUGHTS 25 woods, will not be a good subject for Christianity. The New Testament may be a choice book to him on some, but not on all or most of his days. He will rather go a-fishing in his leisure hours. The Apostles, though they were fishers too, were of the solemn race of sea-fishers, and never trolled for pickerel on inland streams. Men have a singular desire to be good without being good for anything, because, perchance, they think vaguely that so it will be good for them in the end. The sort of morality which the priests inculcate is a very subtle policy, far finer than the politicians, and the world is very successfully ruled by them as the policemen. It is not worth the while to let our im- perfections disturb us always. The conscience really does not, and ought not^to monopolise the whole of our lives, any more than the heart or the head. It is as liable to disease as any other part. I have seen some whose consciences, owing undoubtedly to former indulgence, had grown to be as irritable as spoilt children, and at length gave them no peace. They did not know when to swallow their cud, and their lives of course yielded no milk. I was once reproved by a minister who was driving a poor beast to some meeting-house horse-sheds among the hills of New Hampshire, because I was bending my steps to a mountain-top on the Sabbath, instead of a church, when I would have gone farther than he to hear a true word spoken on that or any day. He declared that I was "breaking the Lord's fourth commandment," and proceeded to enumerate, in a 26 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU sepulchral tone, the disasters which had befallen him whenever he had done any ordinary work on the Sabbath. He really thought that a god was on the watch to trip up those men who followed any secular work on this day, and did not see that it was the evil conscience of the workers that did it. The country is full of this superstition, so that when one enters a village, the church, not only really but from associa- tion, is the ugliest looking building in it, because it is the one in which human nature stoops the lowest and is most disgraced. Certainly, such temples as these shall ere long cease to deform the landscape. There are few things more disheartening and dis- gusting than when you are walking the streets of a strange village on the Sabbath, to hear a preacher shouting like a boatswain in a gale of wind, and thus harshly profaning the quiet atmosphere of the day. You fancy him to have taken oflf his coat, as when men are about to do hot and dirty work. If I should ask the minister of Middlesex to let me speak in his pulpit on a Sunday, he would object, because I do not pray as he does, or because I am not ordained. What under the sun are these things ? Really, there is no infidelity, nowadays, so great as that which prays, and keeps the Sabbath, and rebuilds the churches. The sealer of the South Pacific preaches a truer doctrine. The church is a sort of hospital for men's souls, and as full of quack- ery as the hospital for their bodies. Those who are taken into it live like pensioners in their Retreat or Sailor's Snug Harbour, where you may see a row of SUNDAY THOUGHTS 27 religious cripples sitting outside in sunny weather. Let not the apprehension that he may one day have to occupy a ward therein, discourage the cheerful labours of the able-souled man. While he remembers the sick in their extremities, let him not look thither as to his goal. One is sick at heart of this pagoda worship. It is like the beating of gongs in a Hindoo subterranean temple. In dark places and dungeons the preacher's words might perhaps strike root and grow, but not in broad daylight in any part of the world that I know. The sound of the Sabbath bell far away, now breaking on these shores, does not awaken pleasing associations, but melancholy and sombre ones rather. One involuntarily rests on his oar, to humour his unusually meditative mood. It is as the sound of many catechisms and religious books twanging a canting peal round the earth, seeming to issue from some Egyptian temple and echo along the shore of the Nile, right opposite to Pharaoh's palace and Moses in the bulrushes, startling a multitude of storks and alligators basking in the sun. Everywhere "good men" sound a retreat, and the word has gone forth to fall back on innocence. Fall forward rather on to whatever there is there. Chris- tianity only hopes. It has hung its harp on the willows, and cannot sing a song in a strange land. It has dreamed a sad dream, and does not yet welcome the morning with joy. The mother tells her falsehoods to her child, but, thank Heaven, the child does not grow up in its parent's shadow. Our mother's faith has not grown with her experience. 28 SELECTIONS FROM THOKEAU Her experience has been too much for her. The lesson of life was too hard for her to learn. It is remarkable that almost all speakers and writers feel it to be incumbent on them, sooner or later, to prove or to acknowledge the personality of God. Some Earl of Bridgewater, thinking it better late than never, has provided for it in his will. It is a sad mistake. In reading a work on agriculture, we have to skip the author's moral reflections, and the words "Providence" and "He" scattered along tha page, to come at the profitable level of what he has to say. What he calls his religion is for the most part offensive to the nostrils. He should know better than expose himself, and keep his foul sores covered till they are quite healed. There is more religion in men's science than there is science in their religion. Let us make haste to the report of the committee on swine. A man's real faith is never contained in his creed, nor is his creed an article of his faith. The last is never adopted. This it is that permits him to smile ever, and to live even as bravely as he does. And yet he clings anxiously to his creed, as to a straw, thinking that that does him good service because his sheet anchor does not drag. PEIENDSHIP No word is oftener on the lips of men than Friend- ship, and indeed no thought is more famihar to their aspirations. Ml men are dreaming of it, and its drama, which is always a tragedy, is enacted daily. It is the secret of the universe. You may thread the town, you may wander the country, and none shall ever speak of it, yet thought is everywhere busy about it, and the idea of what is possible in this respect affects our behaviour toward all new men and women, and a great many old ones. Neverthe- less, I can remember only two or three essays on this subject in all literature. No wonder that the Myth- ology, and Arabian Nights, and Shakespeare, and Scott's novels, entertain us, — we are poets and fablers and dramatists and novelists ourselves. We are continually acting a part in a more interesting drama than any written. We are dreaming that our Friends are our Friends, and that we are our Friends' Friends. Our actual Friends are but distant relations of those to whom we are pledged. We never exchange more than three words with a Friend in our lives on that level to which our thoughts and feelings almost 30 SELECTIONS FROM THOKEAU habitually rise. One goes forth prepared to say, "Sweet Friends!" and the salutation is, "Damn your eyes ! " But never mind ; faint heart never won true Friend. my Friend, may it come to pass once, that when you are my Friend I may be yours. Of what use the friendliest dispositions even, if there are no hours given to Friendship, if it is for- ever postponed to unimportant duties and relations 1 Friendship is first. Friendship last. But it is equally impossible to forget our Friends, and to make them answer to our ideal. When they say farewell, then indeed we begin to keep them company. How often we find ourselves turning our backs on our actual Friends, that we may go and meet their ideal cousins. I would that I were worthy to be any man's Friend. What is commonly honoured with the name of Friendship is no very profound or powerful instinct. Men do not, after all, love their Friends greatly. I do not often see the farmers made seers and wise to the verge of insanity by their Friendship for one another. They are not often transfigured and trans- lated by love in each other's presence. I do not observe them purified, refined, and elevated by the love of a man. If one abates a little the price of his wood, or gives a neighbour his vote at town- meeting, or a barrel of apples, or lends him his waggon frequently, it is esteemed a rare instance of Friendship. Nor do the farmers' wives lead lives consecrated to Friendship. I do not see the pair of farmer Friends of either sex prepared to stand against the world. There are only two or three couples in FRIENDSHIP 31 history. To say that a man is your Friend, means j commonly no more than this, that he is not your "f enemy. Most contemplate only what would be the i accidental and trifling advantages of Friendship, as that the Friend can assist in time of need, by his substance, or his influence, or his counsel ; but he who foresees such advantages in this relation proves himself blind to its real advantage, or indeed wholly inexperienced in the relation itself. Such services are particular and menial, compared with the per- petual and all-embracing service which it is. Even the utmost good-will and harmony and practical kindness are not suflBcient for Friendship, for Friends do not live in harmony merely, as some say, but in melody. We do not wish for Friends to feed and clothe our bodies, — neighbours are kind enough for , that, — but to do the like office to our spirits. For 1 this few are rich enough, however well disposed they may be. For the most part we stupidly confound one man with another. The dull distinguish only races or nations, or at most classes, but the wise man, individuals. To his Friend a man's peculiar character appears in every feature and in every action, and it is thus drawn out and improved by him. Think of the importance of Friendship in the education of men. "He that hath love and judgment too, Sees more than any other doe. " It will make a man honest; it will make him a hero; it will make him a saint. It is the state of the just dealing with the just, the magnanimous 32 SELECTIONS FKOM THOEEAU with the magnanimous, the sincere with the sincere, man with man. y And it is well said by another poet, "Why love among the virtues is not known, Is that love is them all contract in one.''~\ All the abuses which are the object of reform with the philanthropist, the statesman, and the house- keeper are unconsciously amended in the intercourse of Friends. A Friend is one who incessantly pays us the compliment of expecting from us all the virtues, and who can appreciate them in us. It takes two to speak the truth, — one to speak, and another to hear. How can one treat with magnanimity mere wood and stone 1 If we dealt only with the false and dishonest, we should at last forget how to speak truth. Only lovers know the value and magnanimity of truth, while traders prize a cheap honesty, and neighbours and acquaintance a cheap civility. In our daily intercourse with men, our nobler faculties are dor- mant and suffered to rust. None will pay us the compliment to expect nobleness from us. Though we have gold to give, they demand only copper. We ask our neighbour to sufifer himself to be dealt with truly, sincerely, nobly; but he answers no by his deafness. He does not even hear this prayer. He says practically, I will be content if you treat me as "no better than I should be," as deceitful, mean, dishonest, and selfish. For the most part, we are con- tented so to deal and to be dealt with, and we do not think that for the mass of men there is any truer and nobler relation possible. A man may have good FRIENDSHIP 33 neighbours, so called, and acquaintances, and even companions, wife, parents, brothers, sisters, children, who meet himself and one another on this ground only. The State does not demand justice of its members, but thinks that it succeeds very well with the least degree of it, hardly more than rogues practise ; and so do the neighbourhood and the family. What is commonly called Friendship even is only a little more honour among rogues. But sometimes we are said to love another, that is, to stand in a true relation to him, so that we give the best to, and receive the best from, him. Between whom there is hearty truth, there is love; and in proportion to our truthfulness and confidence in one another, our lives are divine and miraculous, and answer to our ideal. There are passages of affection in our intercourse with mortal men and women, such as no prophecy had taught us to expect, which transcend our earthly life, and anticipate Heaven for us. What is this Love that may come right into the middle of a prosaic Goffstown day, equal to any of the gods ? that discovers a new world, fair and fresh and eternal, occupying the place of the old one, when to the common eye a dust has settled on the universe ? which world cannot else be reached, and does not exist. What other words, we may almost ask, are memorable and worthy to be repeated than those which love has inspired ? It is wonderful that they were ever uttered. They are few and rare, indeed, but, like a strain of music, they are incessantly repeated and modulated by the memory. All other D 34 SELECTIONS FROM THOBEAU words crumble off with the stucco which overHes the heart. We should not dare to repeat these now aloud. We are not competent to hear them at all ^ , tiHies.3 ' I The books for young people say a great deal about the selection of Friends ; it is because they really have nothing to say about Friends. They mean associates and confidants merely. " Know that the contrariety of foe and Friend proceeds from God." Friendship takes place between those who have an affinity for one another, and is a perfectly natural and inevitable result. No professions nor advances will avail. Even speech, at first, necessarily has nothing to do with it ; but it follows after silence, as the buds in the graft do not put forth into leaves till long after the graft has taken. It is a drama in which the parties have no part to act. We are aU Mussulmen and fatalists in this respect. Impatient and uncertain lovers think that they must say or do something kind whenever they meet ; they must never be cold. But they who are Friends do not do what they think they must, but what they nvust. Even their Friendship is to some extent but a sublime phenomenon to them. The true and not despairing Friend will address his Friend in some such terms as these. " I never asked thy leave to let me love thee,— I have a right. I love thee not as something private and personal, which is your own, but as something universal and worthy of love, loliich I liave fmird. 0, how I think of you ! You are purely good, — you are infinitely good. I can trust you forever. I did not FEIENDSHIP 35 think that humanity was so rich. Give me an oppor- tunity to live." " You are the fact in a fiction, — you are the truth more strange and admirable than fiction. Consent only to be what you are. I alone will never stand- in your way." "This is what I would like, — to be as intimate with you as our spirits are intimate, — respecting you as I respect my ideal. Never to profane one another by word or action, even by a thought. Between us, if necessary, let there be no acquaintance." " I have discovered you ; how can you be concealed from me ? " The Friend asks no return but that his Friend will religipusly accept and wear and not disgrace his '■^apoclfeosiis of him. They cherish each other's hopes. They are kind to each other's dreams. Though the poet says, '"Tis the pre-eminence of Friendship to impute excellence,'' yet we can never praise our Friend, nor esteem him praiseworthy, nor let him think that he can please us by any behamour, or ever treat us well enough. That kindness which has so good a reputation elsewhere can least of all consist with this relation, and no such affront can be offered to a Friend, as a conscious good-will, a friend- liness which is not a necessity of the Friend's nature. \~The sexes are naturally most strongly attracted to one another, by constant constitutional diflFerences, and are most commonly and surely the complements of each other How natural and easy it is for man 36 SELECTIONS FEOM THOEEAU to secure the attention of woman to what interests himself. Men and women of equal culture, thrown together, are sure to be of a certain value to one another, more than men to men. There exists already a natural disinterestedness and liberality in such society, and I think that any man will more confidently carry his favourite books to read to some circle of intelligent women, than to one of his own sex. The visit of man to man is wont to be an inter- ruption, but the sexes naturally expect one another. Yet Friendship is no respecter of sex ; and perhaps it is more rare between the sexes than between two of the same sex. '^ F" Friendship "Ts, at any rate, a relation of perfect equality. It cannot well spare any outward sign of equal obligation and advantage. The nobleman can never have a Friend among his retainers, nor the king among his subjects. Not that the parties to it are in all respects equal, but they are equal in all that respects or affects their Friendship. The one's love is exactly balanced and represented by the other's. Persons are only the vessels which contain the nectar, and the hydrostatic paradox is the symbol of love's law. It finds its level and rises to its fountain-head in all breasts, and its slenderest column balances the ocean. "And love as well the shepherd can As can the mighty nobleman." The one sex is not, in this respect, more tender than the other. A hero's love is as delicate as a maiden's. J FKIENDSHIP 37 Confucius said, "Never contract Friendship with a man who is not better than thyself." It is the merit and preservation of Friendship, that it takes place on a level higher than the actual characters of the parties would seem to warrant. The rays of light come to us in such a curve that every man whom we meet appears to be taller than he actually is. Such foundation has civility. My Friend is that one whom I can associate with my choicest thought. P I always assign to him a nobler employment in my absence than I ever find him engaged in; /and I imagine that the hours which he devotes to me were snatched from a higher society. The sorest insult which I ever received from a Friend was, when he behaved with the license which only long and cheap acquaintance allows to one's faults, in my presence, without shame, and still addressed me in friendly accents. Beware, lest thy Friend learn at last to tolerate one frailty of thine, and so an obstacle be raised to the progress of thy love. There are times when we have had enough even of our Friends, when we begin inevitably to profane one another, and must withdraw religiously into solitude and silence, the better to prepare ourselves for a loftier intimacy. Silence is the ambrosial night in the intercourse of Friends, in which their sincerity is recruited and takes deeper root. Friendship is never established as an understood relation. Do you demand that I be less your Friend that you may know it 'i Yet what right have I to think that another cherishes so rare a sentiment for 38 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU me t It is a miracle which requires constant proofs. It is an exercise of the purest imagination and the rarest faith. It says by a silent but eloquent behaviour, — "I will be so related to thee as thou canst imagine ; even so thou mayest believe. I will spend truth, — all my wealth on thee," — and the Friend responds silently through his nature and life, and treats his Friend with the same divine courtesy. He knows us literally through thick and thin. He never asks for a sign of love, but can distinguish it by the features which it naturally wears. We never need to stand upon ceremony with him with regard to his visits. Wait not till I invite thee, but observe that I am glad to see thee when thou comest. It would be paying too dear for thy visit to ask for it. Where my Friend lives there are all riches and every attraction, and no slight obstacle can keep me from him. Let me never have to teU thee what I have not to teU. Let our intercourse be wholly above ourselves, and draw us up to it. The language of Friendship is not words, but meanings. It is an intelligence above language. One imagines endless conversations with his Friend, in which the tongue shall be loosed, and thoughts be spoken without hesitancy or end ; but the experience is commonly far otherwise. Acquaintances may come and go, and have a word ready for every occasion ; but what puny word shall he utter whose very breath is thought and meaning 1 Suppose you go to bid farewell to your Friend who is setting out on a journey ; what other outward sign do you know FRIENDSHIP 39 than to shake his hand? Have you any palaver ready for him then ? any box of salve to commit to his pocket 1 any particular message to send by him 1 any statement which you had forgotten to make 1 — as if you could forget anything. — No, it is much that you take his hand and say Farewell ; that you could easily omit ; so far custom has prevailed. It is even painful, if he is to go, that he should linger so long. If he must go, let him go quickly. Have you any last words 1 Alas, it is only the word of words, which you have so long sought and found not; you have not a first word yet. There are few even whom I should venture to call earnestly by their most proper names. A name pronounced is the recognition of the individual to whom it belongs. He who can pronounce my name aright, he can call me, and is entitled to my love and service. Yet reserve is the freedom and abandonment of lovers. It is the reserve of what is hostile or indifferent in their natures, to give place to what is kindred and harmonious. The violence of love is as much to be dreaded as that of hate. When it is durable it is serene and equable. Even its famous pains begin only with the ebb of love, for few are indeed lovers, though all would fain be. It is one proof of a man's fitness for Friendship that he is able to do without that which is cheap and passionate. A true Friendship is as wise as it is tender. The parties to it yield implicitly to the guidance of their love, and know no other law nor kindness. It is not extravagant and insane, but what it says is something established henceforth, and 40 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU will bear to be stereotyped. It is a truer truth, it is better and fairer news, and no time will ever shame it, or prove it false. This is a plant which thrives best in a temperate zone, where summer and winter alternate with one another. The Friend is a neces- sa/riws, and meets his Friend on homely ground ; not on carpets and cushions, but on the ground and on rocks they will sit, obeying the natural and primitive laws. They will meet without any outcry, and part without loud sorrow. Their relation implies such qualities as the warrior prizes ; for it takes a valour to open the hearts of men as well as the gates of castles. It is not an idle sympathy and mutual consolation merely, but a heroic ' sympathy of aspirar tion and endeavour. As surely as the sunset in my latest November shall translate me to the ethereal world, and remind me of the ruddy morning of youth ; as surely as the last strain of music which falls on my decaying ear shall make age to be forgotten, or, in short, the mani- fold influences of nature survive during the term of our natural life, so surely my Friend shall for ever he my Friend, and reflect a ray of God to me, and time shall foster and adorn and consecrate our Friendship, no less than the ruins of temples. As I love nature, as I love singing birds, and gleaming stubble, and flowing rivers, and morning and evening, and summer and winter, I love thee, my Friend. But all that can be said of Friendship is like FEIENDSHIP 41 botany to flowers. How can the understanding take account of its friendliness ■? Even the death of Friends will inspire us as much as their lives. They will leave consolation to the mourners, as the rich leave money to defray the expenses of their funerals, and their memories will be incrusted over with sublime and pleasing thoughts, as monuments of other men are overgrown with moss ; for our Friends have no place in the graveyard. | This to our cis-Alpine and cis-Atlantic Friends. WHEEE I LIVED AND WHAT I LIVED FOE At a certain season of our life we are accustomed to consider every spot as the possible site of a house. I have thus surveyed the country on every side within a dozen miles of where I live. In imagination I have bought all the farms in succession, for all were to be bought, and I knew their price. I walked over each farmer's premises, tasted his wild apples, discoursed on husbandry with him, took his farm at his price, at any price, mortgaging it to him in my mind ; even put a higher price on it, — took everything but a deed of it, — took his word for his deed, for I dearly love to talk, — cultivated it, and him too to some extent, I trust, and withdrew when I had enjoyed it long enough, leaving him to carry it on. This experience entitled me to be regarded as a sort of real-estate broker by my friends. Wherever I sat, there I might live, and the landscape radiated from me accordingly. What is a house but a sedes, a seat ?— better if a country-seat. I discovered many a site- for a house not likely to be soon improved, which some might have thought too far from the village, WHERE I LIVED 43 but to my eyes the village was too far from it. Well, there I might live, I said ; and there I did live, for an hour, a summer and a winter life ; saw how I could let the years run off, buffet the winter through, and see the spring come in. The future inhabitants of this region, wherever they may place their houses, may be sure that they have been anticipated. An afternoon sufficed to lay out the land into orchard, woodlot, and pasture, and to decide what fine oaks or pines should be left to stand before the door, and whence each blasted tree could be seen to the best advantage ; and then I let it lie, fallow perchance, for a man is rich in pro- portion to the number of things which he can afford to let alone. My imagination carried me so far that I even had the refusal of several farms, — the refusal was all I wanted, — ^but I never got my fingers burned by actual possession. The nearest that I came to actual posses- sion was when I bought the HoUowell place, and had begun to sort my seeds, and collected materials with which to make a wheelbarrow to carry it on or off with ; but before the owner gave me a deed of it, his wife — every man has such a wife — changed her mind and wished to keep it, and he offered me ten dollars to release him. Now, to speak the truth, I had but ten cents in the world, and it surpassed my arithmetic to tell, if I was that man who had ten cents, or who had a farm, or ten dollars, or all together. However, I let him keep the ten dollars and the farm too, for I had carried it far enough ; or rather, to be generous, I sold him the farm for just what I gave for it, and, 44 SELECTIONS FEOM THOEEA.XT as he was not a rich man, made him a present of ten dollars, and still had my ten cents, and seeds, and materials for a wheelbarrow left. I found thus that I had been a rich man without any damage to my poverty. But I retained the landscape, and I have since annually carried off what it yielded without a wheelbarrow. With respect to landscapes, — " I am monarch of all I survey, My right there is none to dispute. " I have frequently seen a poet withdraw, having enjoyed the most valuable part of a farm, while the crusty farmer supposed that he had got a few wild apples only. Why, the owner does not know it for many years when a poet has put his farm in rhyme, the most admirable kind of invisible fence, has fairly impounded it, milked it, skimmed it, and got all the cream, and left the farmer only the skimmed milk. The real attractions of the Hollowell farm, to me, were — its complete retirement, being about two miles from the village, half a mile from the nearest neigh- bour, and separated from the highway by a broad field ; its bounding on the river, which the owner said protected it by its fogs from frosts in the spring, though that was nothing to me; the gray colour and ruinous state of the house and barn, and the dilapidated fences, which put such an interval between me and the last occupant; the hollow and lichen-covered apple trees, gnawed by rabbits, showing what kind of neighbours I should have; WHEKE I LIVED 45 but above all, the recollection I had of it from my earliest voyages up the river, when the house was concealed behind a dense grove of red maples, through which I heard the house-dog bark. I was in haste to buy it, before the proprietor finished getting out some rocks, cutting down the hollow apple trees, and grubbing up some young birches which had sprung up in the pasture or, in short, had made any more of his improvements. To enjoy these advantages I was ready to carry it on; like Atlas, to take the world on my shoulders, — I never heard what compensation he received for that, — and do all those things which had no other motive or excuse but that I might pay for it and be un- molested in my possession of it ; for I knew all the while that it would yield the most abundant crop of the kind I wanted if I could only afford to let it alone. But it turned out as I have said. All that I could say, then, with respect to farming on a large scale (I have always cultivated a garden) was, that I had had my seeds ready. Many think that seeds improve with age. I have no doubt that time discriminates between the good and the bad; and when at last I shall plant, I shall be less likely to be disappointed. But I would say to my fellows, once for all, As long as possible live free and uncommitted. It makes but little difference whether you are committed to a farm or the county jail. Old Cato, whose De Be Busticd is my "Cultiva- tor," says, and the only translation I have seen makes 46 SELECTIONS FEOM THOKEAU sheer nonsense of the passage, " When you think of getting a farm, turn it thus in your mind, not to buy greedily ; nor spare your pains to look at it, and do not think it enough to go round it once. The oftener you go there the more it will please you, if it is good." I think I shall not buy greedily, but go round and round it as long as I live, and be buried in it first, that it may please me the more at last. The present was my next experiment of this kind, which I purpose to describe more at length, for con- venience, putting the experience of two years into one. As I have said, I do not propose to write an ode to dejection, but to brag as lustily as chanticleer in the morning, standing on his roost, if only to wake my neighbours up. When first I took up my abode in the woods, that is, began to spend my nights as well as days there, which, by accident, was on Independence day, or the fourth of July 1845, my house was not finished for winter, but was merely a defence against the rain, without plastering or chimney, the waUs being of rough weather-stained boards, with wide chinks, which made it cool at night. The upright white hewn studs and freshly-planed door and window casings gave it a clean and airy look, especially in the morning, when its timbers were saturated with dew, so that I fancied that by noon some sweet gum would exude from them. To my imagination it retained throughout the day more or less of this auroral character, reminding me WHEEE I LIVED 47 of a certain house on a mountain which I had visited the year before. This was an airy and unplastered cabin, fit to entertain a travelling god, and where a goddess might trail her garments. The winds which passed over my dwelling were such as sweep over the ridges of mountains, bearing the broken strains, or celestial parts only, of terrestrial music. The morn- ing wind for ever blows, the poem of creation is un- interrupted; but few are the ears that hear it. Olympus is but the outside of the earth everywhere. The only house I had been the owner of before, if I except a boat, was a tent, which I used occasionally when making excursions in the summer, and this is still rolled up in my garret ; but the boat, after passing from hand to hand, has gone down the stream of time. With this more substantial shelter about me, I had made some progress toward settling in the world. This frame, so slightly clad, was a sort of crystallisation around me, and reacted on the builder. It was suggestive somewhat as a picture in outlines. I did not need to go out doors to take the air, for the atmosphere within had lost none of its freshness. It was not so much within doors as behind a door where I sat, even in the rainiest weather. The Earivansa says, "An abode without birds is like a meat without seasoning." Such was not my abode, for I found myself suddenly neighbour to the birds; not by having imprisoned one, but having caged myself near them. I was not only nearer to some of those which commonly frequent the garden and the orchard, but to those wilder and 48 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU more thrilling songsters of the forest which never, or rarely, serenade a villager, — the wood-thrush, the veery, the scarlet tanager, the field-sparrow, the whip-poor-will, and many others. I was seated by the shore of a small pond, about a mile and a half south of the village of Concord and somewhat higher than it, in the midst of an extensive wood between that town and Lincoln, and about two miles south of that our only field known to fame, Concord Battle Ground ; but I was so low in the woods that the opposite shore, half a mile off, like the rest, covered with wood, was my most distant horizon. For the first week, whenever I looked out on the pond it impressed me like a tarn high up on the side of a mountain, its bottom far above the surface of other lakes, and, as the sun arose, I saw it throwing off its nightly clothing of mist, and here and there, by degrees, its soft ripples or its smooth reflecting surface was revealed, while the mists, like ghosts, were stealthily withdrawing in every direction into the woods, as at the breaking up of some nocturnal conventicle. The very dew seemed to hang upon the trees later into the day than usual, as on the sides of mountains. This small lake was of most value as a neighbour in the intervals of a gentle rainstorm in August, when, both air and water being perfectly still, but the sky overcast, mid-afternoon had all the serenity of evening, and the wood-thrush sang around, and was heard from shore to shore. A lake like this is never smoother than at such a time ; and the clear WHEEE I LIVED 49 portion of the air above it being shallow and darkened by clouds, the water, full of light and reflections, becomes a lower heaven itself so much the more important. From a hill -top near by, where the wood had been recently cut off, there was a pleasing vista southward across the pond, through a wide indentation in the hills which form the shore there, where their opposite sides sloping toward each other suggested a stream flowing out in that direction through a wooded valley, but stream there was none. That way I looked between and over the near green hills to some distant and higher ones in the horizon, tinged with blue. Indeed, by standing on tiptoe I could catch a glimpse of some of the peaks of the still bluer and more distant mountain ranges in the north-west, those true-blue coins from heaven's own mint, and also of some portion of the village. But in other directions, even from this point, I could not see over or beyond the woods which surrounded me. It is well to have some water in your neighbourhood, to give buoyancy to and float the earth. One value even of the smallest well is, that when you look into it you see that earth is not continent but insular. This is as important as that it keeps butter cool. When I looked across the pond from this peak toward the Sudbury meadows, which in time of flood I distin- guished elevated perhaps by a mirage in their seething valley, like a coin in a basin, all the earth beyond the pond appeared like a thin crust insulated and floated even by this small sheet of intervening E 50 SELECTIONS FEOM THOEEAU water, and I was reminded that this on which I dwelt was but dry land. Though the view from my door was still more contracted, I did not feel crowded or confined in the least. There was pasture enough for my imagination. The low shrub-oak plateau to which the opposite shore arose, stretched away toward the prairies of the West and the steppes of Tartary, afibrd- ing ample room for all the roving families of men. "There are none happy in the world but beings who enjoy freely a vast horizon," — said Damodara, when his herds required new and larger pastures. /Both place and time were changed, and I dwelt nearer to those parts of the universe and to those eras in history which had most attracted me. Where I lived was as far off as many a region viewed nightly by astronomers. We are wont to imagine rare and delectable places in some remote and more celestial corner of the system, behind the constellation of Cassiopeia's Chair, far from noise and disturbance. I discovered that my house actually had its site in such a withdrawn, but for ever new and unprofaned, part of the universe. If it were worth the while to settle in those parts near to the Pleiades or the Hyades, to Aldebaran or Altair, then I was really there, or at an equal remoteness from the life which I had left behind, dwindled and twinkling vsdth as fine a ray to my nearest neighbour, and to be seen only in moonless nights by him. Such was that part of creation where I had squatted ; — WHAT I LIVED FOR 51 "There was a shepherd that did live, And held his thoughts as high As were the mounts whereon his flocks Did hourly feed him by." What should we think of the shepherd's life if his flocks always wandered to higher pastures than his thoughts 1 Every morning was a cheerful invitation to make my life of equal simplicity, and I may say innocence, with Nature herself. I have been as sincere a worshipper of Aurora as the Greeks. I got up early and bathed in the pond ; that was a religious exercise, and one of the best things which I did. They say that characters were engraven on the bathing tub of King Tching-thang to this effect : " Renew thyself completely each day ; do it again, and again, and forever again.'' I can understand that. Morning brings back the heroic ages. I was as much affected by the faint hum of a mosquito making its invisible and unimaginable tour through my apartment at earliest dawn, when I was sitting with door and windows open, as I could be by any trumpet that ever sang of fame. It was Homer's requiem; itself an Iliad and Odyssey in the air, singing its own wrath and wanderings. There was something cosmical about it; a standing advertise- ment, till forbidden, of the everlasting vigour and fertility of the world. The morning, which is the most memorable season of the day, is the awakening hour. Then there is least somnolence in us ; and for an hour, at least, some part of us awakes which 52 SELECTIONS FEOM THOREAU slumbers all the rest of the day and night. Little is to be expected of that day, if it can be called a day, to which we are not awakened by our Genius, but by the mechanical nudgings of some servitor, are not awakened by oui' own newly -acquired force and aspirations from within, accompanied by the undula- tions of celestial music, instead of factory bells, and a fragrance filling the air — to a higher life than we fell asleep from ; and thus the darkness bear its fruit, and prove itself to be good, no less than the Hght. That man who does not believe that each day contains an earlier, more sacred, and auroral hour than he has yet profaned, has despaired of Ufe, and is pursuing a descending and darkening way. After a partial cessation of his sensuous life, the soul of man, or its organs rather, are reinvigorated each day, and his Genius tries again what noble life it can make. All memorable events, I should say, transpire in morning time and in a morning atmosphere. The Vedas say, " All intelligences awake with the morning." Poetry and art, and the fairest and most memorable of the actions of men, date from such an hour. All poets and heroes, like Memnon, are the children of Aurora, and emit their music at sunrise. To him whose elastic and vigorous thought keeps pace with the sun, the day is a perpetual morning. It matters not what the clocks say or the attitudes and labours of men. Morning is when I am awake and there is a dawn in me. Moral reform is the effort to throw off sleep. Why is it that men give so poor an account of their day if they have WHAT I LIVED FOE 53 not been slumbering ^ Tbey are not such poor calculators. If they had not been overcome with drowsiness they would have performed something. The millions are awake enough for physical labour ; but only one in a million is awake enough for effective intellectual exertion, only one in a hundred millions to a poetic or divine life. To be awake is to be alive. I have never yet met a man who was quite awake. How could I have looked him in the face ? We must learn to reawaken and keep ourselves awake, not by mechanical aids, but by an infinite expectation of the dawn, which does not forsake us in our soundest sleep. I know of no more encouraging fact than the unquestionable ability of man to elevate his life by a conscious' endeavour. It is something to be able to paint a particular picture, or to carve a statue, and so to make a few objects beautiful ; but it is far more glorious to carve and paint the very atmosphere and medium through which we look, which morally we can do. To affect the quality of the day, that is the highest of arts. Every man is tasked to make his life, even in its details, worthy of the contemplation of his most elevated and critical hour. If we refused, or rather used up, such paltry information as we get, the oracles would distinctly inform us how this might be done. / 1 went to the woods because I wished to live de- liberately, to front only the essential facts of life, and see if I could not learn what it had to teach, and not, when I came to die, discover that I had not lived. I did not wish to live what was not life, living is so 54 SELECTIONS FROM THOREAU dear ; nor did I wish to practise resignation, unless it was quite necessary. I wanted to live deep and suck out all the marrow of life, to live so sturdily and Spartan-like as to put to rout all that was not life, to cut a broad swath and shave close, to drive life into a corner, and reduce it to its lowest terms, and, if it proved to be mean, why then to get the whole and genuine meanness of it, and publish its meanness to the world ; or if it were sublime, to know it by ex- perience, and be able to give a true account of it in my next excursion. For most men, it appears to me, are in a strange uncertainty about it, whether it is of the devil or of God, and have somewhat hastily concluded that it is the chief end of man here to "glorify God and enjoy him forever." \ Still we live meanly, like ants ; though the fable tells us that we were long ago changed into men ; like pygmies we fight with cranes ; it is error upon error, and clout upon clout, and our best virtue has for its occasion a superfluous and evitable wretched- ness. Our life is frittered away by detail. An honest man has hardly need to count more than his ten fingers, or in extreme cases he may add his ten toes, and lump the rest. Simplicity, simplicity, simplicity ! I say, let your affairs be as two or three, and not a hundred or a thousand ; instead of a million count half a dozen, and keep your accounts on your thumb nail. In the midst of this chopping sea of civilised life, such are the clouds and storms and quicksands and thousand-and-one items to be allowed for, that a man has to live, if he would not founder and go to ■WHAT I LIVED FOR 55 the bottom and not make his port at all, by dead reckoning, and he must be a great calculator indeed who succeeds. Simplify, simplify. Instead of thrde meals a day, if it be necessary eat but one ; instead of a hundred dishes, five ; and reduce other things in proportion. Our life is like a German Confederacy, made up of petty states, with its boundary for ever fluctuating, so that even a German cannot tell you how it is bounded at any moment. The nation itself, with all its so-called internal improvements, which, by the way, are all external and superficial, is just such an unwieldy and overgrown establishment, cluttered with furniture and tripped up by its own traps, ruined by luxury and heedless expense, by want of calculation and a worthy aim, as the million households in the land ; and the only cure for it as for them is in a rigid economy, a stern and more than Spartan simplicity of life and elevation of purpose. It lives too fast. Men think that it is essential that the Nation have commerce, and export ice, and talk through a telegraph, and ride thirty miles an hour, without a doubt, whether fhey do or not ; but whether we should live like baboons or like men, is a little uncertain. If we do not get out sleepers, and forge rails, and devote days and nights to the work, but go to tinkering upon our lives to improve them, who will build railroads ? And if railroads are not built, how shall we get to heaven in season ? But if we stay at home and mind our business, who will want railroads 1 We do not ride on the railroad ; it rides upon us. Did you ever think what those sleepers are that 56 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU underlie the railroad ? Each one is a man, an Irish- man, or a Yankee man. The rails are laid on them, and they are covered with sand, and the cars run smoothly over them. They are sound sleepers, I assure you. And every few years a new lot is laid down and run over ; so that, if some have the pleasure of riding on a rail, others have the misfortune to be ridden upon. And when they run over a man that is walking in his sleep, a supernumerary sleeper in the wrong position, and wake him up, they suddenly stop the cars, and make a hue and cry about it, as if this were an exception. I am glad to know that it takes a gang of men for every five miles to keep the sleepers down and level in their beds as it is, for this is a sign that they may sometime get up again. Why should we live with such hurry and waste of life t We are determined to be starved before we are hungry. Men say that a stitch in time saves nine, and so they take a thousand stitches to-day to save nine to-morrow. As for work, we haven't any of any consequence. We have the Saint Vitus's dance, and cannot possibly keep our heads still. If I should only give a few pulls at the parish bell-rope, as for a fire, that is, without setting the bell, there is hardly a man on his farm in the outskirts of Concord, notwith- standing that press of engagements which was his excuse so many times this morning, nor a boy, nor a woman, I might almost say, but would forsake all and follow that sound, not mainly to save property from the flames, but, if we will confess the truth, much more to see it burn, since burn it must, and we. WHAT I LIVED FOR 57 be it known, did not set it on fire, — or to see it put out, and have a hand in it, if that is done as hand- somely ; yes, even if it were the parish church itself. Hardly a man takes a half-hour's nap after dinner, but when he wakes he holds up his head and asks, " What's the news ? " as if the rest of mankind had stood his sentinels. Some give directions to be waked every half-hour, doubtless for no other purpose ; and then, to pay for it, they tell what they have dreamed. After a night's sleep the news is as indispensable as the breakfast. " Pray tell me anything new that has happened to a man anywhere on this globe," — and he reads it over his coffee and rolls, that a man has had his eyes gouged out this morning on the Wachito River ; never dreaming the while that he lives in the dark unfathomed mammoth cave of this world, and has but the rudiment of an eye himself. For my part, I could easily do without the post- office. I think that there are very few important communications made through it. To speak critically, I never received more than one or two letters in my life — I wrote this some years ago — that were worth the postage. The penny-post is, commonly, an institution through which you seriously offer a man that penny for his thoughts which is so often safely offered in jest. And I am sure that I never read any memorable news in a newspaper. If we read of one man robbed, or murdered, or killed by accident, or one house burned, or one vessel wrecked, or one steamboat blown up, or one cow run over on the Western Eailroad, or one mad dog killed, or one lot 58 SELECTIONS FfiOM THOKBAU of grasshoppers in the winter, — we never need read of another. One is enough. If you are acquainted with the principle, what do you care for a myriad instances and applications? To a philosopher all news, as it is called, is gossip, and they who edit and read it are old women over their tea. Yet not a few are greedy after this gossip. There was such a rush, as I hear, the other day at one of the ofi&ces to learn the foreign news by the last arrival, that several large squares of plate glass belonging to the establishment were broken by the pressure, — news which I seriously think a ready wit might write a twelvemonth or twelve years beforehand with sufficient accuracy. As for Spain, for instance, if you know how to throw in Don Carlos and the Infanta, and Don Pedro and Seville and Granada, from time to time in the right proportions, — they may have changed the names a little since I saw the papers, — and serve up a bull- fight when other entertainments fail, it will be true to the letter, and give us as good an idea of the exact state or ruin of things in Spain as the most succinct and lucid reports under this head in the newspapers ; and as for England, almost the last significant scrap of news from that quarter was the revolution of 1649 ; and if you have learned the history of her crops for an average year, you never need attend to that thing again, unless your speculations are of a merely pecuniary character. If one may judge who rarely looks into the newspapers, nothing new does ever happen in foreign parts, a French revolution not excepted. WHAT I LIVED FOK 59 What news ! how much more important to know what that is which was never old ! " Kieou-he-yu (great dignitary of the state of Wei) sent a man to Khoung-tseu to know his news. Khoung-tseu caused the messenger to be seated near him, and questioned him in these terms : ' What is your master doing ? ' The messenger answered with respect : ' My master desires to diminish the number of his faults, but he cannot come to the end of them.' The messenger being gone, the philosopher remarked : ' What a worthy messenger ! What a worthy messenger ! ' " The preacher, instead of vexing the ears of drowsy farmers on their day of rest at the end of the week, — for Sunday is the fit conclusion of an ill- spent week, and not the fresh and brave beginning of a new one, — with this one other draggle-tail of a sermon, should shout with thundering voice, — " Pause ! Avast ! Why so seeming fast, but deadly slow?" /..§hams and delusions are esteemed for soundest truths, while reality is fabulous. If men would steadily observe realities only, and not allow them- selves to be deluded, life, to compare it with such things as we know, would be like a fairy tale and the Arabian Nights' Entertainments. \If we respected only what is inevitable and has a right to be, music and poetry would resound along the streets. When we are unhurried and wise we perceive that only great and worthy things have any permanent and absolute existence, — that petty fears and petty pleasures are but the shadow of the realityj This 60 SELECTIONS FEOM THOEBAU is always exhilarating and sublimej By closing the eyes and slumbering, and consenting to be deceived by shows, men establish and confirm their daily hfe of routine and habit everywhere, which still is built on purely illusory foundations. Children, who play life, discern its true law and relations more clearly than men, who fail to live it worthily, but who think that they are wiser by experience — that is, by failure^ I have read in a Hindoo book, that "there was a Mng's son, who, being erpelled in infancy from his native city, was brought up by a forester, and, growing up to maturity in that state, imagined himself to belong to the barbarous race with which he lived. One of his father's ministers having discovered him, revealed to him what he was, and the misconception of his character was removed, and he knew himself to be a prince. So soul," continues the Hindoo philosopher, "from the cir- cumstances in which it is placed, mistakes its own character, until the truth is revealed to it by some holy teacher, and then it knows itself to be Brahme." I perceive that we inhabitants of New England live this mean life that we do because our vision does not penetrate the surface of things. We think that that is which appears to be. If a man should walk through this town and see only the reality, where, think you, would the " Mill-dam " go to 1 If he should give us an account of the realities he beheld there, we should not recognise the place in his description. Look at a meeting-house, or a court-house, or a jail, or a shop, or a dwelling-house, and say what that thing really "WHAT I LIVED FOE 61 is before a true gaze, and they would all go to pieces in your account of them. /Men esteem truth remote, in the outskirts of the sy^em, behind the farthest star, before Adam and after the last man. In eternity there is indeed something true and sublime. But all these times and places and occasions are now and here. God himself culminates in the present moment, and will never be more divine in the lapse of all the ages. And we are enabled to apprehend at all what is sublime and noble only by the perpetual instilling and drenching of the reality that surrounds us. The universe constantly and obediently answers to our conceptions ; whether we travel fast or slow, the track is laid for us. Let us spend our lives in conceiving then. The poet or the artist never yet had so fair and noble a design but some of his posterity at least could accomplish it.\ Let us spend one day as delibemely as Nature, and not be thrown off the track by every nutshell and mosquito's wing that falls on the rails. Let us rise early and fast, or break fast, gently and without perturbation ; let company come and let company go, let the bells ring and the children cry, — determined to make a day of it. Why should we knock under and go with the stream? Let us not be upset and overwhelmed in that terrible rapid and whirlpool called a dinner, situated in the meridian shallows. Weather this danger and you are safe, for the rest of the way is down hill. With un- relaxed nerves, with morning vigour, sail by it, looking another way, tied to the mast like Ulysses. 62 SELECTIONS FEOM THOREAU If the engine whistles, let it whistle till it is hoarse for its pains. If the bell rings, why should we run 1 We will consider what kind of music they are like. Let us settle ourselves, and work and wedge our feet downward through the mud and slush of opinion, and prejudice, and tradition, and delusion, and appearance, that alluvion which covers the globe, through Paris and London, through New York and Boston and Concord, through church and state, through poetry and philosophy and religion, tiU we come to a hard bottom and rocks in place, which we can call reality, and say. This is, and no mistake ; and then begin, having a point d'appui, below freshet and frost and fire, a place where you might found a wall or a state, or set a lamp-post safely, or perhaps a gauge, not a Nilometer, but a Realometer, that future ages might know how deep a freshet of shams and appearances had gathered from time to time. If you stand right fronting and face to face to a fact, you will see the sun glimmer on both its surfaces, as if it were a cimeter, and feel its sweet edge dividing you through the heart and marrow, and so you will happily conclude your mortal career. Be it life or death, we crave only reality. If we are really dying, let us hear the rattle in our throats and feel cold in the extremities ; if we are alive, let us go about our business. Time is but the stream I go a-fishing in. I drink at it ; but while I drink I see the sandy bottom and detect how shallow it is. Its thin current slides away, but eternity remains. I would drink deeper ; WHAT I LIVED FOR 63 fish in the sky, whose bottom is pebbly with stars. I cannot count one. I know not the first letter of the alphabet. I have always been regretting that I was not as wise as the day I was born. The intellect is a cleaver ; it discerns and rifts its way into the secret of things. I do not wish to be any more busy with my hands than is necessary. My head is hands and feet. I feel all my best faculties concentrated in it. My instinct tells me that my head is an organ for burrowing, as some creatures use their snout and fore-paws, and with it I would mine and burrow my way through these hills. I think that the richest vein is somewhere hereabouts ; so by the divining rod and thin rising vapours I judge ; and here I will begin to mine. HIGHEE LAWS As I came home through the woods with my string of fish, trailing my pole, it being now quite dark, I caught a glimpse of a wood-chuck stealing across my path, and felt a strange thrill of savage delight, and was strongly tempted to seize and devour him raw ; not that I was hungry then, except for that wildness which he represented. Once or twice, however, while I lived at the pond, I found myself ranging the woods, like -a half-starved hound, with a strange abandonment, seeking some kind of venison which I might devour, and no morsel could have been too savage for me. The wildest scenes had become unaccountably familiar. I found in myself, and still find, an instinct toward a higher, or, as it is named, spiritual life, as do most men, and another toward a primitive rank and savage one, and I reverence them both. I love the wild not less than the good. The wildness and adventure that are in fishing still recommended it to me. I like sometimes to take rank hold on life and spend my day more as the animals do. Perhaps I have owed to this employment and to hunting, when quite HIGHER LAWS 65 young, my closest acquaintance with Nature. They early introduce us to and detain us in scenery with which otherwisej__at that age, we should have little acquaintance. \ Fishermen, hunters, woodchoppers, and others, spending their lives in the fields and woods, in a peculiar sense a part of Nature themselves, . are often in a more favourable mood for observing her, '^ in the intervals of their pursuits, than philosophers or poets even, who approach her with expectationTD She is not afraid to exhibit herself to them. The traveller on the prairie is naturally a hunter, on the head-waters of the Missouri and Columbia a trapper, and at the Falls of St. Mary a fisherman. He who is only a traveller learns things at second-hand and by the halves, and is poor authority. We are most interested when science reports what those men already know practically or instinctively, for that,/ alone is a true humanity, or account of human experience. They mistake who assert that the Yankee has few amusements, because he has not so many public holidays, and men and boys do not play so many games as they do in England, for here the more primitive but solitary amusements of hunting, fishing, i/ and the like, have not yet given place to the former. Almost every New England boy among my con- temporaries shouldered a fowling-piece between the ages of ten and fourteen ; and his hunting and fishing grounds were not limited like the preserves of an English nobleman, but were more boundless even than those of a savage. No wonder, then, F 66 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU that he did not oftener stay to play on the common. But already a change is taking place, owing, not to an increased humanity, but to an increased scarcity of game, for perhaps the hunter is the greatest friend of the animals hunted, not excepting the Humane Society. Moreover, when at the pond, I wished sometimes to add fish to my fare for variety. I have actually fished from the same kind of necessity that the first fishers did. Whatever humanity I might conjure up against it was all factitious, and concerned my philosophy more than my feelings. I speak of fishing only now, for I had long felt differently about fowling, and sold my gun before I went to the woods. Not that I am less humane than others, but I did not perceive that my feehngs were much affected. I did not pity the fishes nor the worms. This was habit. As for fowling, during the last years that I carried a gun my excuse was that I was studying ornithology, and sought only new or rare birds. But I confess that I am now inclined to think that there is a finer way of studying ornithology than this. It requires so much closer attention to the habits of the birds, that, if for that reason only, I have been willing to omit the gun. Yet not- withstanding the objection on the score of humanity, I am compelled to doubt if equally valuable sports are ever substituted for these ; and when some of my friends have asked me anxiously about their boys, whether they should let them hunt, I have answered, yes, — remembering that it was one of the best parts HIGHEE LAWS 67 of my education, — make them tunters, though sports- men only at first, if possible, mighty hunters at last, so that they shall not find game large enough for them in this or any vegetable wilderness, — hunters as well as fishers of men. Thus far I am of the opinion of Chaucer's nun, who " yave not of the text a pulled hen That saith that hunters ben not holy men." There is a period in the history of the individual, as of the race, when the hunters are the " best men," as the Algonquins called them. We cannot but pity the boy who has never fired a gun ; he is no more , humane, while his education has been sadly neglected.'' This was my answer with respect to those youths who were bent on this pursuit, trusting that they would soon outgrow it. No humane being, past the thoughtless age of boyhood, will wantonly murder any creature, which holds its life by the same tenure that he does. The hare in its extremity cries like a child. I warn you, mothers, that my sympathies do not always make the usual phU-anihropic distinc- tions. Such is oftenest the young man's introduction to the forest, and the most original part of himself. He goes thither at first as a hunter and fisher, until at last, if he has the seeds of a better life in him, he distinguishes his proper objects, as a poet or naturalist"^ it may be, and leaves the gun and fish-pole behind. The mass of men are still and always young in this respect. In some countries a hunting parson is no 68 SELECTIONS FROM THOREAU uncommon sight. Such a one might make a good shepherd's dog, but is far from being the Good Shepherd. I have been surprised to consider that the only obvious employment, except wood-chopping, ice-cutting, or the like business, which ever to my knowledge detained at Walden Pond for a whole half day any of my fellow-citizens, whether fathers or children of the town, with just one exception, was fishing. Commonly they did not think that they were lucky, or well paid for their time, unless they got a long string of fish, though they had the opportunity of seeing the pond all the while. They might go there a thousand times before the sediment of fishing would sink to the bottom and leave their purpose pure; but no doubt such a clarifying process would be going on aU the while. The governor and his councU faintly remember the pond, for they went a-fishing there when they were boys ; but now they are too old and dignified to go a-fishing, and so they know it no more for ever. Yet even they expect to go to heaven at last. If the legislature regards it, it is chiefly to regulate the number of hooks to be used there ; but they know nothing about the hook of hooks with which to angle for the pond itself, impaling the legislature for a bait. Thus, even in civilised communities, the embryo man passes through the hunter stage of development. I have found repeatedly, of late years, that I cannot fish without falling a little in self-respect. I have tried it again and again. I have skill at it, and, like HIGHER LAWS 69 many of my fellows, a certain instinct for it, which revives from time to time, but always when I have done I feel that it would have been better if I had not fished. I think that I do not mistake. It is a faint intimation, yet so are the first streaks of morning. There is unquestionably this instinct in me which belongs to the lower orders of creation; yet with every year I am less a fisherman, though without more humanity or even wisdom ; at present I am no fisherman at all. But I see that if I were to live in a wilderness I should again be tempted to become a fisher and hunter in earnest. Beside, there is some- thing essentially unclean about this diet and all flesh, and I began to see where housework commences, and whence the endeavour, which costs so much, to wear a tidy and respectable appearance each day, to keep the house sweet and free from all ill odours and sights. Having been my own butcher and scullion and cook, as well as the gentleman for whom the dishes were served up, I can speak from an unusually complete experience. The practical objection to animal food in my case was its uncleanness ; and, besides, when I had caught and cleaned and cooked and eaten my fish, they seemed not to have fed me essentially. It was insignificant and unnecessary, and cost more than it came to. A little bread or a few potatoes would have done as well, with less trouble and filth. Like many of my contemporaries, I had rarely for many years used animal food, or tea, or coffee, etc. ; not so much because of any ill effects < which I had traced to them, as because they were not 70 SELECTIONS FROM THOREA.U t' agreeable to my imagination. The repugnance to animal food is not the effect of experience, but is an instinct. It appealed more beautiful to live low and fare hard in many respects ; and though I never did so, I went far enough to please my imagination. I believe that every man who has ever been earnest to preserve his higher or poetic faculties in the best condition has been particularly inclined to abstain from animal food, and from much food of any kind. It is a significant fact, stated by entomologists, — I find it in Kirby and Spence, — that " some insects in their perfect state, though furnished with organs of feeding, make no use of them ; " and they lay it down as " a general rule, that almost all insects in this state eat much less than in that of larvse. The voracious caterpillar when transformed into a butterfly,'' . . . "and the gluttonous maggot when become a fly,'' content themselves with a drop or two of honey or some other sweet liquid. The abdomen under the wings of the butterfly still represents the larva. This is the tid-bit which tempts his insectivorous fate. The gross feeder is a man in the larva state; and there are whole nations in that condition, nations without fancy or imagination, whose vast abdomens betray them. It is hard to provide and cook so simple and clean ^ a diet as will not offend the imagination ; but this, I think, is to be fed when we feed the bodyj they should both sit down at the same table. Yet perhaps this may be done. The fruits eaten temperately need not make us ashamed of our appetites, nor interrupt HIGHER LAWS 71 the worthiest pursuits. But put an extra condiment into your dish, and it will poison you. It is not worth the while to live by rich cookery. Most men would feel shame if caught preparing with their own hands precisely such a dinner, whether of animal or vegetable food, as is every day prepared for them by others. Yet till this is otherwise we are not civilised, and, if gentlemen and ladies, are not true men and women. This certainly suggests what change is to be made. It may be vain to ask why the imagination will not be reconciled to flesh and fat. I am satisfied that it is not. Is it not a reproach that man is a carnivorous animal ? True, he can and does live, in a great measure, by preying on other animals ; but this is a miserable way, — as any one who will go to snaring rabbits, or slaughtering lambs, may learn, — and he will be regarded as a benefactor of his race who shall teach man to confine himself to a more innocent and wholesome diet. Whatever my own practice may be, I have no doubt that it is a part of the destiny of the human race, in its gradual improve- ment, to leave off eating animals, as surely as the savage tribes have left off eating each other when they came in contact with the more civilised. If one listens to the faintest but constant sugges- tions of his genius, which are certainly true, he sees not to what extremes, or even insanity, it may lead him ; and yet that way, as he grows more resolute and faithful, his road lies. The faintest assured objection which one healthy man feels will at length prevail over the arguments and customs of mankind. 72 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU No man ever followed his genius till it misled Hm. Though the result were bodily weakness, yet perhaps no one can say that the consequences were to be regretted, for these were a life in conformity to higher principles. If the day and the night are such that you greet them with joy, and life emits a fra- grance like flowers and sweet-scented herbs, is more elastic, more starry, more immortal, — ^that is your success. ^All nature is your congratulation, and you have cause momentarily to bless yourself. The greatest gains and values are furthest from being appreciated. We easily come to doubt if they exist. We soon forget them. They are the highest reality. Perhaps the facts most astounding and most real are never communicated by man to man. The true harvest of my daily life is somewhat as intangible and indescribable as the tints of morning or evening. It is a little star-dust caught, a segment of the rain- bow which I have clutched. ) Yet, for my part, I was never unusually squeamish ; I could sometimes eat a fried rat with a good relish, if it were necessary. I am glad to have drunk water so long, for the same reason that I prefer the natural ^sky to an opium-eater's heaven. I would fain keep jsober always ; and there are infinite degrees of /drunkenness. I believe that water is the only drink for a wise man ; wine is not so noble a liquor ; and think of dashing the hopes of a morning with a cup of warm coffee, or of an evening with a dish of tea ! Ah, how low I fall when I am tempted by them ! Even music may be intoxicating. Such apparently HIGHER LAWS 73 slight causes destroyed Greece and Rome, and will destroy England and America. Of all ebriosity, who does not prefer to be intoxicated by the air he breathes? I have found it to be the most serious objection to coarse labours long continued, that they compelled me to eat and drink coarsely also. But to tell the truth, I find myself at present somewhat less particular in these respects. I carry less religion to the table, ask no blessing; not because I am wiser than I was, but, I am obliged to confess, because, however much it is to be regretted, with years I have grown more coarse and indifferent. Perhaps these questions are entertained only in youth, as most believe of poetry. My practice is "nowhere,'' my opinion is here. Nevertheless I am far from regarding myself as one of those privileged ones to whom the C5£d>ref ers when it says, that " he who has true faith in the Omnipresent Supreme Being may eat all that exists," — that is, is not bound to inquire what is his food, or who prepares it ; and even in their case it is to be observed, as a Hindoo commentator has remarked, that the Vedant limits this privilege to "the time of distress." Who has not sometimes derived an inexpressible satisfaction from his food in which appetite had no share 1 I have been thrilled to think that I owed a mental perception to the commonly gross sense of taste, that I have been inspired through the palate, that some berries which I had eaten on a hillside had fed my genius. " The soul not being mistress of her- self," says Thseng-tseu, " one looks, and one does not 74 SELECTIONS FROM THORBAU see ; one listens, and one does not hear ; one eats, and one does not know the savour of food." He who distinguishes the true savour of his food can never be a glutton ; he who does not cannot be otherwise. A puritan may go to his brown-bread crust with as gross an appetite as ever an alderman to his turtle. Not that food which entereth into the mouth defileth a man, but the appetite with which it is eaten. It is neither the quality nor the quantity, but the devotion to sensual savours ; when that which is eaten is not a viand to sustain our animal, or inspire our spiritual life, but food for the worms that possess us. If the hunter has a taste for mud-turtles, musk-rats, and other such savage tid-bits, the fine lady indulges a taste for jelly made of a calf's foot, or for sardines from over the sea, and they are even. He goes to the mill-pond, she to her preserve-pot. The wonder is how they, how you and I, can live this slimy beastly life, eating and drinking. Our whole life is startlingly moral. Thejp is never an instant's truce between virtue and vice^ Goodness is the only investment that never fails. In the music of the harp which trembles round the world it is the insisting on this which thrills usi^The harp is the travelling patterer for the Universe's Insurance Com- pany, recommending its laws, and our little goodness is all the assessment that we pay. Though the youth at last grows indifferent, the laws of the universe are not indifferent, but are for ever on the side of the most sensitive. Listen to every zephyr for some reproof, for it is surely there, and he is unfortunate HIGHER LAWS 75 who does not hear it. We cannot touch a string or move a stop but the charming moral transfixes us. Many an irksome noise, go a long way off, is heard as music, a proud sweet satire on the meanness of our lives. We are conscious of an animal in us, which awakens in proportion as our higher nature slumbers. It is reptile and sensual, and perhaps cannot be wholly expelled; like the worms which, even in life and health, occupy our bodies. Possibly we may with- draw from it, but never change its nature. I fear that it may enjoy a certain health of its own ; that we may be well, yet not pure. The other day I picked up the lower jaw of a hog, with white and sound teeth and tusks, which suggested that there was an animal health and vigour distinct from the spiritual. This creature succeeded by other means than temperance and purity. " That in which men differ from brute beasts,'' says Mencius, " is a thing very inconsiderable; the common herd lose it very soon; superior men preserve it carefully.'' Who knows what sort of life would result if we had attained to purity 1 If I knew so wise a man as could teach me purity I would go to seek him forthwith. "Ai command over our passions, and over the external senses of the body, and good acts, are declared by the Ved to be indispensable in the mind's approximation to God." Yet the spirit can for the time pervade and control every member and function of the body, and transmute what in form is the grossest sensuality into purity and devotion. The generative energy. 76 SELECTIONS FROM THOREAU which, when we are loose, dissipates and makes us unclean, when we are continent invigorates and inspires us. Chastity is the flowering of man ; and what are called Genius, Heroism, Holiness, and the like, are but various fruits which succeed it. Man flows at once to God when the channel of purity is open. By turns our purity inspires and our impurity casts us down. He is blessed who is assured that the animal is dying out in him day by day, and the divine being established. Perhaps there is none but has cause for shame on account of the inferior and brutish nature to which he is allied. I fear that we are such gods or demigods only as fauns and satyrs, the divine allied to beasts, the creatures of appetite, ' and that, to some extent, our very life is our dis- ' ' How happy's he who hath due place assigned To his beasts and disaforested his mind ! Can use his horse, goat, wolf, and ev'ry beast, And is not ass himself to all the rest ! Else man not only is the herd of swine, But he's those devils too which did incline Them to a headlong rage, and made them worse." All sensuality is one, though it takes many forms ; all purity is one. It is the same whether a man eat, or drink, or cohabit, or sleep sensually. They are but one appetite, and we only need to see a person do any one of these things to know how great a sensualist he is. The impure can neither stand nor sit with pui'ity. When the reptile is attacked at one mouth of his burrow, he shows himself at another. HIGHEE LAWS 77 If you would be chaste, you must be temperate, l/ What is chastity ? How shall a man know if he is chaste 1 He shall not know it. We have heard of this virtue, but we know not what it is. We speak conformably to the rumour which we have heard. From exertion come wisdom and purity ; from sloth ignorance and sensuality. In the student sensuality is a sluggish habit of mind. An unclean person is universally a slothful one, — one who sits by a stove, whom the sun shines on prostrate, who reposes with- out being fatigued. If you would avoid uncleanness, and all the sins, work earnestly, though it be at cleaning a stable. Nature is hard to be overcome, but she must be overcome. What avails it that you are Christian, if you are not purer than the heathen, if you deny yourself no more, if you are not more ]/' religious? I know of many systems of religion esteemed heathenish whose precepts fill the reader with shame, and provoke him to new endeavours, though it be to the performance of rites merely. '' I hesitate to say these things, but it is not because of the subject, — I care not how obscene my words are, — but because I cannot speak of them without betraying my impurity. We discourse freely without shame of one form of sensuality, and are silent about another. We are so degraded that we cannot speak ,, simply of the necessary functions of human nature. ' In earlier ages, in some countries, every function was reverently spoken of and regulated by law. Nothing was too trivial for the Hindoo lawgiver, however offensive it may be to modern taste. He teaches 78 SELECTIONS EKOM THOEEAU how to eat, drink, cohabit, void excrement and urine, and the like, elevating what is mean, and does not falsely excuse himself by calling these things trifles. / Every man is the builder of a temple, called his body, to the god he worships, after a style purely his own, nor can he get off by hammering marble instead. We are all sculptors and painters, and our material is our own flesh and blood and bones. Any noble- ness begins at once to refine a man's features, any meanness or sensuality to imbrute them. John Farmer sat at his door one September evening, after a hard day's work, his mind stUl running on his labour more or less. Having bathed he sat down to recreate his intellectual man. It was a rather cool evening, and some of his neighbours were apprehend- ing a frost. He had not attended to the train of his thought;. 1 3ng when he heard some one playing on a flute, and that sound harmonised with his mood. Still he thought of his work ; but the burden of his thought was, that though this kept running in his head, and he found himself planning and contriving it against his will, yet it concerned him very little. It was no more than the scurf of his skin, which was constantly shuffled ofi'. But the notes of the flute came home to his ears out of a different sphere from that he worked in, and suggested work for certain faculties which slumbered in him. They gently did away with the street, and the village, and the state in which he lived. A voice said to him, — Why do you stay here and live this mean moiling life, when a glorious existence is possible for you ? Those same HIGHER LAWS 79 stars twinkle over other fields than these.- — But how to come out of this condition and actually migrate thither "i All that he could think of was to practise some new austerity, to let his mind descend into his body and redeem it, and, treat himself with ever-in- creasing respect. HOUSE-WAEMING In October I went a-graping to the river meadows, and loaded myself with clusters more precious for their beauty and fragrance than for food. There too I admired, though I did not gather, the cranberries, small waxen gems, pendants of the meadow grass, pearly and red, which the farmer plucks with an ugly rake, leaving the smooth meadow in a snarl, heedlessly measuring them by the bushel and the dollar only, and sells the spoils of the meads to Boston and New York, destined to be jammed, to satisfy the tastes of lovers of Nature there. So butchers rake the tongues of bison out of the prairie grass, regardless of the torn and drooping plant. The barberry's brilliant fruit was likewise food for my eyes merely; but I collected a small store of wild apples for coddling, which the proprietor and tra- vellers had overlooked. When chestnuts were ripe I laid up half a bushel for winter. It was very exciting at that season to roam the then boundless chestnut woods of Lincoln, — they now sleep their long sleep under the railroad, — with a bag on my shoulder, and a stick to open burrs with in my hand, for I did HOUSE-WARMING 81 not always wait for the frost, amid the rustling of leaves and the loud reproofs of the red squirrels and the jays, whose half-consumed nuts I sometimes stole, for the burrs which they had selected were sure to contain sound ones. Occasionally I climbed and shook the trees. They grew also behind my house, and one large tree which almost overshadowed it, was, when in flower, a bouquet which scented the whole neighbourhood, but the squirrels and the jays got most of its fruit ; the last coming in flocks early in the morning and picking the nuts out of the burrs before they fell. I relinquished these trees to them and visited the more distant woods composed wholly of chestnut. These nuts, as far as they went, were a good substitute for bread. Many other substitutes might, perhaps, be found. Digging one day for ilsh- worms I discovered the ground-nut {Apios tuherosa) on its string, the potato of the aborigines, a sort of fabulous fruit, which I had begun to doubt if I had ever dug and eaten in childhood, as I had told, and had not dreamed it. I had often since seen its crimpled red velvety blossom supported by the stems of other plants without knowing it to be the same. Cultivation has well-nigh exterminated it. It has a sweetish taste, much like that of a frost-bitten potato, and I found it better boiled than roasted. This tuber seemed like a faint promise of Nature to rear her own children and feed them simply here at some future period. In these days of fatted cattle and waving grain -fields, this humble root, which was once the totem of an Indian tribe, is quite forgotten, or known G 82 SELECTIONS EEOM THOREAU only'by its flowering vine ; but let wild Nature reign here once more, and the tender and luxurious English grains will probably disappear before a myriad of foes, and without the care of man the crow may carry back even the last seed of corn to the great corn-field of the Indian's God in the south-west, whence he is said to have brought it ; but the now almost exterminated ground-nut will perhaps revive and flourish in spite of frosts and wildness, prove itself indigenous, and resume its ancient importance and dignity as the diet of the hunter tribe. Some Indian Ceres or Minerva must have been the in- ventor and bestower of it; and when the reign of poetry commences here, its leaves and string of nuts may be represented on our works of art. Already, by the first of September, I had seen two or three small maples turned scarlet across the pond, beneath where the white stems of three aspens diverged, at the point of a promontory, next the water. Ah, many a tale their colour told ! And gradually from week to week the character of each tree came out, and it admired itself reflected in the smooth mirror of the lake. Each morning the manager of this gallery substituted some new picture, distin- guished by more brilliant or harmonious colouring, for the old upon the walls. The wasps came by thousands to my lodge in October, as to winter quarters, and settled on my windows within and on the walls overhead, sometimes deterring visitors from entering. Each morning, when they were numbed with cold, I swept some of HOUSE-WAEMING 83 them out, but I did not trouble myself much to get rid of them ; I even felt complimented by their regarding my house as a desirable shelter. They never molested me seriously, though they bedded with me ; and they gradually disappeared, into what crevices I do not know, avoiding winter and unspeak- able cold. Like the wasps, before I finally went into winter quarters in November, I used to resort to the north- east side of Walden, which the sun, reflected from the pitch-pine woods and the stony shore, made the fire- side of the pond; it is so much pleasanter and wholesomer to be warmed by the sun while you can be, than by an artificial fire. I thus warmed myself by the still glowing embers which the summer, like a departed hunter, had left. When I came to build my chimney I studied masonry. My bricks being second-hand ones required to be cleaned with a trowel, so that I learned more than usual of the qualities of bricks and trowels. The mortar on them was fifty years old, and was said to be still growing harder; but this is one of those sayings which men love to repeat whether they are true or not. Such sayings themselves grow harder and adhere more firmly with age, and it would take many blows with a trowel to clean an old wiseacre of them. Many of the villages of Mesopotamia are built of second-hand bricks of a very good quality, obtained from the ruins of Babylon, and the cement on them is older and probably harder 84 SELECTIONS FROM THOREA0 still. However that may be, I was struck by the peculiar toughness of the steel which bore so many violent blows without being worn out. As my bricks had been in a chimney before, though I did not read the name of Nebuchadnezzar on them, I picked out as many fireplace bricks as I could find, to save work and waste, and I filled the spaces between the bricks about the fireplace with stones from the pond shore, and also made my mortar with the white sand from the same place. I lingered most about the fireplace, as the most vital part of the house. Indeed, I worked so deliberately, that though I commenced at the ground in the morning, a course of bricks raised a few inches above the floor served for my pillow at night ; yet I did not get a stiff neck for it that I remember ; my stiff neck is of older date. I took a poet to board for a fortnight about those times, which caused me to be put to it for room. He brought his own knife, though I had two, and we used to scour them by thrusting them into the earth. He shared with me the labours of cooking. I was pleased to see my work rising so square and solid by degrees, and reflected, that, if it proceeded slowly, it was calculated to endure a long time. The chimney is to some extent an independent structure, standing on the ground and rising through the house to the heavens ; even after the house is burned it still stands sometimes, and its importance and independence are apparent. This was toward the end of summer. It was now November. The north wind had already begun to cool the HOUSE-WAEMING 85 pond, though it took many weeks of steady blowing to accomplish it, it is so deep. When I began to have a fire at evening, before I plastered my house, the chimney carried smoke particularly well, because of the numerous chinks between the boards. Yet I passed some cheerful evenings in that cool and airy apartment, surrounded by the rough brown boards fuU of knots, and rafters with the bark on high over- head. My house never pleased my eye so much after it was plastered, though I was obliged to confess that it was more comfortable. Should not every apartment in which man dwells be lofty enough to create some obscurity overhead, where flickering shadows may play at evening about the rafters? These forms are more agreeable to the fancy and imagination than fresco paintings or other the most expensive furniture. I now first began to inhabit my house, I may say, when I began to use it for warmth as well as shelter. I had got a couple of old fire-dogs to keep the wood from the hearth, and it did me good to see the soot form on the back of the chimney which I had built, and I poked the fire with more right and more satisfaction than usual. My dwelling was small, and I could hardly entertain an echo in it ; but it seemed larger for being a single apartment and remote from neighbours. All the attractions of a house were concentrated in one room ; it was kitchen, chamber, parlour, and keeping- room; and whatever satisfaction parent or child, master or servant, derive from living in a house, I enjoyed it all. Cato says, the master of a family 86 SELECTIONS FKOM THOEEAU (patremfamilias) must have in his rustic villa " cellam oleariam, vinaraim, dolia multa, uti lubeat caritatem expectare, et rei, et virtuti, et glorias erit,"— that is, " an oil and wine cellar, many casks, so that it may be pleasant to expect hard times ; it will be for his advantage, and virtue, and glory." I had in my cellar a firkin of potatoes, about two quarts of peas with the weevil in them, and on my shelf a little rice, a jug of molasses, and of rye and Indian meal a peek each. I sometimes dream of a larger and more populous house, standing in a golden age, of enduring materials, and without ginger-bread work, which shall still consist of only one room, a vast, rude, substantial, primitive hall, without ceiling or plastering, with bare rafters and purlins supporting a sort of lower heaven over one's head, — useful to keep off rain and snow ; where the king and queen posts stand out to receive your homage, when you have done reverence to the prostrate Saturn of an older dynasty on stepping over the sill ; a cavernous house, wherein you must reach up a torch upon a pole to see the roof ; where some may live in the fireplace, some in the recess of a window, and some on settles, some at one end of the hall, some at another, and some aloft on rafters with the spiders, if they choose ; a house which you have got into when you have opened the outside door, and the ceremony is over ; where the weary traveller may wash, and eat, and converse, and sleep, without further journey ; such a shelter as you would be glad to reach in a tempestuous HOUSE-WARMING 87 night, containing all the essentials of a house, and nothing for house-keeping; where you can see all the treasures of the house at one view, and every- thing hangs upon its peg that a man should use ; at once kitchen, pantry, parlour, chamber, store- house, and garret ; where you can see so necessary a thing as a barrel or a ladder, so convenient a thing as a cupboard, and hear the pot boil, and pay your respects to the fire that cooks your dinner and the oven that bakes your bread, and the necessary furniture and utensils are the chief ornaments; where the washing is not put out, nor the fire, nor the mistress, and perhaps you are sometimes re- quested to move from off the trap-door, when the cook would descend into the cellar, and so learn whether the ground is solid or hollow beneath you without stamping. A house whose inside is as open and manifest as a bird's nest, and you cannot go in at the front door and out at the back without seeing some of its inhabitants ; where to be a guest is to be presented with the freedom of the house, and not to be carefully excluded from seven-eighths of it, shut up in a particular cell, and told to make yourself at home there, — in solitary confinement. Nowadays the host does not admit you to his hearth, but has got the mason to build one for yourself somewhere in his alley, and hospitality is the art of keeping you at the greatest distance. There is as much secrecy about the cooking as if he had a design to poison you. I am aware that I have been on many a man's premises, and might have been legally ordered off". 88 SELECTIONS FKOM THOEEAU but I am not aware that I have been in many men's houses. I might visit in my old clothes a king and queen who lived simply in such a house as I have described, if I were going their way; but backing out of a modern palace will be all that I shall desire to learn, if ever I am caught in one. PEIMEVAL NATUEEi Pekhaps I most fully realised that this was primeval, untamed, and for ever untamable Natwe, or whatever else men call it, while coming down this part of the mountain. We were passing over "Burnt Lands," burnt by lightning, perchance, though they showed no recent marks of fire, hardly so much as a charred stump, but looked rather like a natural pasture for the moose and deer, exceedingly wild and desolate, with occasional strips of timber crossing them, and low poplars springing up, and patches of blueberries here and there. I found myself traversing them familiarly, like some pasture run to waste, or partially reclaimed by man ; but when I reflected what man, what brother or sister or kinsman of our race made it and claimed it, I expected the proprietor to rise up and dispute my passage. It is difficult to conceive of a region uninhabited by man. We habitually pre- sume his presence and influence everywhere. And yet we have not seen pure Nature, unless we have seen her thus vast and drear and inhuman, though in * Thoreau visited the Maine Woods in 1846, 1853, and 1857, chiefly to gratify his interest in wild nature and the Indians. 90 SELECTIONS FKOM THOEBAU the midst of cities. Nature was here something savage and awful, though beautiful. I looked with awe at the ground I trod on, to see what the Powers had made there, the form and fashion and material of their work. This was that Earth of which we have heard, made out of Chaos and Old Night. Here was no man's garden, but the unhandselled globe. It was not lawn, nor pasture, nor mead, nor woodland, nor lea, nor arable, nor waste-land. It was the fresh and natural surface of the planet Earth, as it was made for ever and ever, — to be the dwelling of man, we say, — so Nature made it, and man may use it if he can. Man was not to be associated with it. It was Matter, vast, terrific, — not his Mother Earth that we have heard of, not for him to tread on, or be buried in, — no, it were being too familiar even to let his bones lie there, — the home, this, of Necessity and Fate. There was there felt the presence of a force not bound to be kind to man. It was a place for heathenism and superstitious rites,- — to be inhabited by men nearer of kin to the rocks and to wild animals than we. We walked over it with a certain awe, stopping, from time to time, to pick the blue- berries which grew there, and had a smart and spicy taste. Perchance where our wild pines stand, and leaves lie on their forest floor, in Concord, there were once reapers, and husbandmen planted grain; but here not even the surface had been scarred by man, but it was a specimen of what God saw fit to make this world. What is it to be admitted to a museum, to see a myriad of particular things, compared with PRIMEVAL NATURE 91 being shown some star's surface, some hard matter in its home ! I stand in awe of my body, this matter to which I am bound has become so strange to me. I fear not spirits, ghosts, of which I am one, — that my body might, — but I fear bodies, I tremble to meet them. What is this Titan that has possession of me ? Talk of mysteries ! — Think of our life in nature, — daily to be shown matter, to come in contact with it, — rocks, trees, wind on our cheeks ! the solid earth ! the actual world ! the common sense ! Contact ! Con- tact I WTio are we 1 where are we ? About four o'clock, the same afternoon, we com- menced our return voyage, which would require but little if any poling. In shooting rapids the boatmen use large and broad paddles, instead of poles, to guide the boat with. Though we glided so swiftly, and often smoothly, down, where it had cost us no slight effort to get up, our present voyage was attended with far more danger : for if we once fairly struck one of the thousand rocks by which we were sur- rounded the boat would be swamped in an instant. When a boat is swamped under these circumstances, the boatmen commonly find no difficulty in keeping afloat at first, for the current keeps both them and their cargo up for a long way down the stream ; and if they can swim, they have only to work their way gradually to the shore. The greatest danger is of being caught in an eddy behind some larger rock, where the water rushes up stream faster than else- where it does down, and being carried round and round under the surface till they are drowned. 92 SELECTIONS FKOM THOREAU M'Causlin pointed out some rocks which had been the scene of a fatal accident of this kind. Sometimes the body is not thrown out for several hours. He himself had performed such a circuit once, only his legs being visible to his companions; but he was fortunately thrown out in season to recover his breath. In shooting the rapids, the boatman has this problem to solve : to choose a circuitous and safe course amid a thousand sunken rocks, scattered over a quarter or half a mile, at the same time that he is moving steadily on at the rate of fifteen miles an hour. Stop he cannot ; the only question is, where will he go? The bow-man chooses the course with all his eyes about him, striking broad off with his paddle, and drawing the boat by main force into her course. The stern-man faithfully follows the bow. We were soon at the Aboljacarmegus Falls. Anxious to avoid the delay, as well as the labour, of the portage here, our boatmen went forward first to reconnoitre, and concluded to let the batteau down the falls, carrying the baggage only over the portage. Jumping from rock to rock until nearly in the middle of the stream, we were ready to receive the boat and let her down over the first fall, some six or seven feet perpendicular. The boatmen stand upon the edge of a shelf of rock, where the fall is perhaps nine or ten feet perpendicular, in from one to two feet of rapid water, one on each side of the boat, and let it shde gently over, till the bow is run out ten or twelve feet in the air; then, letting it drop squarely, while one holds the painter, the other leaps in, and his compan- PRIMEVAL NATURE 93 ion following, they are whirled down the rapids to a new fall, or to smooth water. In a very few minutes they had accomplished a passage in safety, which would be as foolhardy for the unskilful to attempt as the descent of Niagara itself. It seemed as if it needed only a little familiarity, and a little more skill, to navigate down such falls as Niagara itself with safety. At any rate, I should not despair of such men in the rapids above table-rock, until I saw them actually go over the falls, so cool, so collected, so fertile in resources are they. One might have thought that these were falls, and that falls were not to be waded through with impunity, like a mud- puddle. There was really danger of their losing their sublimity in losing their power to harm us. Familiarity breeds contempt. The boatman pauses, perchance, on some shelf beneath a table-rock under the fall, standing in some cove of back-water two feet deep, and you hear his rough voice come up through the spray, coolly giving directions how to launch the boat this time. Having carried round Pockwockomus Falls, our oars soon brought us to the Katepskonegan, or Oak Hall carry, where we decided to camp half way over, leaving our batteau to be carried over in the morning on fresh shoulders. One shoulder of each of the boatmen showed a red spot as large as one's hand, worn by the batteau on this expedition; and this shoulder, as it did all the work, was perceptibly lower than its fellow, from long service. Such toil soon wears out the strongest constitution. The 94 SELECTIONS FROM THOREAU drivers are accustomed to work in the cold water in the spring, rarely ever dry; and if one falls in all over he rarely changes his clothes till night, if then, even. One who takes this precaution is called by a particular nickname, or is turned off. None can lead this life who are not almost amphibious. M'Causlin said soberly, what is at any rate a good story to tell, that he had seen where six men were wholly under water at once, at a jam, with their shoulders to hand- spikes. If the log did not start, then they had to put out their heads to breathe. The driver works as long as he can see, from dark to dark, and at night has not time to eat his supper and dry his clothes fairly, before he is asleep on his cedar bed. We lay that night on the very bed made by such a party, stretching our tent over the poles which were still standing, but reshingling the damp and faded bed with fresh leaves. In the morning we carried our boat over and launched it, making haste lest the wind should rise. The boatmen ran down Passamagamet, and, soon after, Ambejijis Falls, while we walked round with the baggage. We made a hasty breakfast at the head of Ambejijis Lake, on the remainder of our pork, and were soon rowing across its smooth surface again, under a pleasant sky, the mountain being now clear of clouds, in the north-east. Taking turns at the oars, we shot rapidly across Deep Cove, the foot of Pamadumcook, and the North Twin, at the rate of six miles an hour, the wind not being high enough to disturb us, and reached the Dam at noon. The boat- PRIMEVAL NATURE 95 men went through one of the log sluices in the batteau, where the fall was ten feet at the bottom, and took us in below. Here was the longest rapid in our voyage, and perhaps the running this was as dangerous and arduous a task as any. Shooting down sometimes at the rate, as we judged, of fifteen miles an hour, if we struck a rock we were split from end to end in an instant. Now, like a bait bobbing for some river monster, amid the eddies, now darting to this side of the stream, now to that, gliding swift and smooth near to our destruction, or striking broad off with the paddle and drawing the boat to right or left with all our might, in order to avoid a rock. I suppose that it was like running the rapids of the Saute de St. Marie, at the outlet of Lake Superior, and our boatmen probably displayed no less dexterity than the Indians there do. We soon ran through this mile, and floated in Quakish Lake. After such a voyage, the troubled and angry waters, which once had seemed terrible and not to be trifled with, appeared tamed and subdued ; they had been bearded and worried in their channels, pricked and whipped into submission with the spike-pole and paddle, gone through and through with impunity, and all their spirit and their danger taken out of them, and the most swollen and impetuous rivers seemed but playthings henceforth. I began, at length, to understand the boatman's familiarity with, and contempt for, the rapids. " Those Fowler boys," said Mrs. M'Causlin, " are perfect ducks for the water." They had run down to Lincoln, according to her, 96 SELECTIONS FROM THOREA.U thirty or forty miles, in a batteau, in the night, for a doctor, when it was so dark that they could not see a rod before them, and the river was swollen so as to be almost a continuous rapid, so that the doctor cried, when they brought him up by daylight, " Why, Tom, how did you see to steer?" "We didn't steer much, — only kept her straight." And yet they met with no accident. It is true, the more difficult rapids are higher up than this. When we reached the Millinocket, opposite to Tom's house, and were waiting for his folks to set us over, for we had left our batteau above the Grand Falls, we discovered two canoes, with two men in each, turning up this stream from Shad Pond, one keeping the opposite side of a small island before us, while the other approached the side where we were standing, examining the banks carefully for musk-rats as they came along. The last proved to be Louis Neptune and his companion, now, at last, on their way up to Chesuncook after moose ; but they were so disguised that we hardly knew them. At a little distance they might have been taken for Quakers, with their broad-brimmed hats, and overcoats with broad capes, the spoils of Bangor, seeking a settlement in this Sylvania, — or, nearer at hand, for fashionable gentlemen the morning aiter a spree. Met face to face, these Indians in their native woods looked like the sinister and slouching fellows whom you meet picking up strings and paper in the streets of a city. There is, in fact, a remarkable and unexpected resem- blance between the degraded savage and the lowest PRIMEVAL NATURE 97 classes in a great city. The one is no more a child of nature than the other. In the progress of degradation the distinction of races is soon lost. Neptune at first was only anxious to know what we "kill," seeing some partridges in the hands of one of the party, but we had assumed too much anger to permit of a reply. We thought Indians had some honour before. But — "Me been sick. 0, me unwell now. You make bargain, then me go." They had in fact been de- layed so long by a drunken frolic at the Five Islands, and they had not yet recovered from its effects. They had some young musquash in their canoes, which they dug out of the banks with a hoe, for food, not for their skins, for musquash are their principal food on these expeditions. So they went on up the Millinocket, and we kept down the bank of the Penobscot, after recruiting ourselves with a draught of Tom's beer, leaving Tom at his home. Thus a man shall lead his life away here on the edge of the wilderness, on Indian Millinocket stream, in a new world, far in the dark of a continent, and have a flute to play at evening here, while his strains echo to the stars, amid the howling of wolves; shall live, as it were, in the primitive age of the world, a primitive man. Yet he shall spend a sunny day, and in this century be my contemporary ; perchance shall read some scattered leaves of literature, and sometimes talk with me. Why read history, then, if the ages and the generations are now 1 He lives three thousand years deep into time, an age not yet described by poets. Can you well go further back in H 98 SELECTIONS FROM THOREAU history than this 1 Ay ! ay ! — for there turns up but now into the mouth of Millinooket stream a still more ancient and primitive man, whose history is not brought down even to the former. In a bark vessel sewn with the roots of the spruce, with hornbeam paddles, he dips his way along. He is but dim and misty to me, obscured by the aeons that lie between the bark-canoe and the batteau. He builds no house of logs, but a wigwam of skins. He eats no hot bread and sweet cake, but musqflash and moose-meat and the fat of bears. He glides up the Millinocket and is lost to my sight, as a more distant and misty cloud is seen flitting by behind a nearer, and is lost in space. So he goes about his destiny, the red face of man. After having passed the night, and buttered our boots for the last time, at Uncle George's, whose dogs almost devoured him for joy at his return, we kept on down the river the next day, about eight miles on foot, and then took a batteau, with a man to pole it, to Mattawamkeag, ten more. At the middle of that very night, to make a swift conclusion to a long story, we dropped our buggy over the half- finished bridge at Oldtown, where we heard the confused din and clink of a hundred saws, which never rest, and at six o'clock the next morning one of the party was steaming his way to Massachusetts. What is most striking in the Maine wilderness is the continuousness of the forest, with fewer open intervals or glades than you had imagined Except PRIMEVAL NATURE 99 the few burnt-lands, the narrow intervals on, the rivers, the bare tops of the high mountainSj^ and the lakes and streams, the forest is uninterrupted. It is even more grim and wild than you had anticipated, a damp and intricate wilderness; in the spring every- where wet and miry. The" aspect of the country, indeed, is universally stern and savage, excepting the distant views of the forest from hills, and the lake prosfcsct?, which are mild and civilising in a degree. The lakes are something which you are unprepared for ; they lie up so high, exposed to the light, and the forest is diminished to a fine fringe on their edges, with here and there a blue mountain, like amethyst jewels set around some jewel of the first water, — so anterior, so superior, to all the changes that are to take place on their shores, even now civil and refined, and fair as they can ever be. These are not the artificial forests of an English king, — a royal preserve merely. Here prevail no forest laws but those of nature. The aborigines have never been dispossessed, nor nature disforested. It is a country full of evergreen trees, of mossy silver birches and watery maples, the ground dotted with insipid, small, red berries, and strewn with damp and moss-grown rocks, — a country diversified with innumerable lakes and rapid streams, peopled with trout and various species of leucisci, with salmon, shad, and pickerel, and other fishes ; the forest resounding at rare intervals with the note of the chicadee, the blue-jay, and the woodpecker, the scream of the fish-hawk and the eagle, the laugh of '**^ylOO SELECTIONS FKOM THOREAU the loon, and the whistle of ducks along the solitary streard^jcat night, with the hooting of owls and howling OTv wolves; in summer, swarming with myriads of blaxsk flies and mosquitoes, more formid- able than wolves iS^^the white man. Such is the home of the moose, the'lbsM', the caribou, the wolf, the beaver, and the Indian. T^ho shall describe the inexpressible tenderness and immQrtal life of the grim forest, where Nature, though it be'^i(i-wkiter, is ever in her spring, where the moss-grown and decaying trees are not old, but seem to enjoy a per- petual youth ; and blissful, innocent Nature, like a serene infant, is too happy to make a noise, except by a few tinkling, lisping birds and trickling rills ? What a place to live, what a place to die and be buried in ! There certainly men would live for ever, and laugh at death and the grave. There they could have no such thoughts as are associated with the village graveyard, — that make a grave out of one of those moist evergreen hummocks ! Die and be buried who will, I mean to live here stUl ; My nature grows ever more young The primitive pines among. I am reminded by my journey how exceedingly new this country still is. You have only to travel for a few days into the interior and back parts even of many of the old States, to come to that very America which the Northmen, and Cabot, and Gosnold, and Smith, and Ealeigh visited. If Columbus was the first to discover the islands, PKIMEVAL NATUEB 101 Americus Vespucius and Cabot, and the Puritans, and we their descendants, have discovered only the shores of America. While the republic has already acquired a history world-wide, America is still unsettled and unexplored. Like the English in New Holland, we live only on the shores of a continent even yet, and hardly know where the rivers come from which float our navy. The very timber and boards and shingles of which our houses are made, grew but yesterday in a wilderness where the Indian still hunts and the moose runs wild. New York has her wilderness within her own borders ; and though the sailors of Europe are familiar with the soundings of her Hudson, and Fulton long since invented the steam- boat on its waters, an Indian is still necessary to guide her scientific men to its head-waters in the Adirondac country. Have we even so much as discovered and settled the shores? Let a man travel on foot along the coast, from the Passamaquoddy to the Sabine, or to the Eio Bravo, or to wherever the end is now, if he is swift enough to overtake it, faithfully following the windings of every inlet and of every cape, and stepping to the music of the surf, — ^with a desolate fishing-town once a week, and a city's port once a month to cheer him, and putting up at the light- houses, when there are any, — and tell me if it looks like a discovered and settled country, and not rather, for the most part, like a desolate island, and No- man's Land. We have advanced by leaps to the Pacific, and 102 SELECTIONS FEOM THOEBAU left many a lesser Oregon and California unexplored behind us. Though the railroad and the telegraph have been established on the shores of Maine, the Indian still looks out from her interior mountains over all these to the sea. There stands the city of Bangor, fifty miles up the Penobscot, at the head of navigation for vessels of the largest class, the principal lumber depot on this continent, with a population of twelve thousand, like a star on the edge of night, still hewing at the forests of which it is buUt, already overflowing with the luxuries and refinement of Europe, and sending its vessels to Spain, to England, and to the West Indies, for its groceries, — and yet only a few axe-men have gone " up river," into the howling wilderness which feeds it. The bear and deer are still found within its limits ; and the moose, as he swims the Penobscot, is entangled amid its shipping, and taken by foreign sailors in its harbour. Twelve miles in the rear, twelve miles of railroad, are Orono and the Indian Island, the home of the Penob- scot tribe, and then commence the batteau and the canoe, and the military road ; and sixty miles above, the country is virtually unmapped and unexplored, and there still waves the virgin forest of the New World. THE MUEDEE OF THE MOOSE Here, about two o'clock, we turned up a small branch three or four rods wide, which comes in on the right from the south, called Pine-Stream, to look for moose signs. We had gone but a few rods before we saw very recent signs along the water's edge, the mud lifted up by their feet being quite fresh, and Joe declared that they had gone along there but a short time before. We soon reached a small meadow on the east side, at an angle in the stream, which was, for the most part, densely covered with alders. As we were advancing along the edge of this, rather more quietly than usual, perhaps, on account of the freshness of the signs, — the design being to camp up this stream, if it promised well, — I heard a slight crackling of twigs deep in the alders, and turned Joe's attention to it ; whereupon he began to push the canoe back rapidly ; and we had receded thus half a dozen rods, when we suddenly spied two moose standing just on the edge of the open part of the meadow which we had passed, not more than six or seven rods distant, looking round the alders at us. They made me think of great frightened rabbits, with 104 SELECTIONS FKOM THOEEAU their long ears and half-inquisitive, half-frightened looks ; the true denizens of the forest (I saw at once), tilling a vacuum which now first I discovered had not been filled for me, — moose-men, wood-eaters, the word is said to mean, — clad in a sort of Vermont gray, or homespun. Our Nimrod, owing to the retrograde movement, was now the farthest from the game ; but being warned of its neighbourhood, he hastily stood up, and, while we ducked, fired over our heads one barrel at the foremost, which alone he saw, though he did not know what kind of creature it was; whereupon this one dashed across the meadow and up a high bank on the north-east, so rapidly as to leave but an indistinct impression of its outlines on my mind. At the same instant, the other, a young one, but as tall as a horse, leaped out into the stream, in full sight, and there stood cowering for a moment, or rather its disproportionate lowness behind gave it that appearance, and uttering two or three trumpeting squeaks. I have an indistinct recollection of seeing the old one pause an instant on the top of the bank in the woods, look toward its shivering young, and then dash away again. The second barrel was levelled at the calf, and when we expected to see it drop in the water, after a little hesitation, it, too, got out of the water, and dashed up the hill, though in a some- what different direction. All this was the work of a few seconds, and our hunter, having never seen a moose before, did not know but they were deer, for they stood partly in the water, nor whether he had fired at the same one twice or not. From the style THE MUBDEE OF THE MOOSE 105 in which they went off, and the fact that he was not used to standing up and firing from a canoe, I judged that we should not see anything more of them. The Indian said that they were a cow and her calf, — a yearling, or perhaps two years old, for they accom- pany their dams so long ; but, for my part, I had not noticed much difference in their size. It was but two or three rods across the meadow to the foot of the bank, which, like all the world thereabouts, was densely wooded ; but I was surprised to notice that, as soon as the moose had passed behind the veil of the woods, there was no sound of footsteps to be heard from the soft, damp moss which carpets that forest, and long before we landed, perfect silence reigned. Joe said, "If you wound 'em moose, me sure get 'em." We all landed at once. My companion reloaded ; the Indian fastened his birch, threw off his hat, adjusted his waistband, seized the hatchet, and set out. He told me afterward, casually, that before we landed he had seen a drop of blood on the bank, when it was two or three rods off. He proceeded rapidly up the bank and through the woods, with a peculiar, elastic, noiseless, and stealthy tread, looking to right and left on the ground, and stepping in the faint tracks of the wounded moose, now and then pointing in silence to a single drop of blood on the handsome, shining leaves of the Clintonia Borealis, which, on every side, covered the ground, or to a dry fern-stem freshly broken, all the while chewing some leaf or else the spruce gum. I followed, watching his 106 SELECTIONS FROM THOREAU motions more than the trail of the moose. After following the trail about forty rods in a pretty direct course, stepping over fallen trees and winding between standing ones, he at length lost it, for there were many other moose-tracks there, and, returning once more to the last blood-stain, traced it a little way and lost it again, and, too soon, I thought, for a good hunter, gave it up entirely. He traced a few steps, also, the tracks of the calf ; but, seeing no blood, soon relinquished the search. I observed, while he was tracking the moose, a certain reticence or moderation in him. He did not communicate several observations of interest which he made, as a white man would have done, though they may have leaked out afterward. At another time, when we heard a slight crackling of twigs and he landed to reconnoitre, he stepped lightly and gracefully, stealing through the bushes with the least possible noise, in a way in which no white man does, — as it were, finding a place for his foot each time. About half an hour after seeing the moose, we pursued our voyage up Pine-Stream, and soon, coming to a part which was very shoal and also rapid, we took out the baggage, and proceeded to carry it round, while Joe got up with the canoe alone. We were just completing our portage and I was absorbed in the plants, admiring the leaves of the aster macro- phyllus, ten inches wide, and plucking the seeds of the great round-leaved orchis, when Joe exclaimed from the stream that he had killed a moose. He had THE MURDER OF THE MOOSE 107 found the cow-moose lying dead, but quite warm, in the middle of the stream, which was so shallow that it rested on the bottom, with hardly a third of its body above water. It was about an hour after it was shot, and it was swollen with water. It had run abovit a hundred rods and sought the stream again, cutting off a slight bend. No doubt, a better hunter would have tracked it to this spot at once. I was surprised at its great size, horse-like, but Joe said it was not a large cow-moose. My companion went in search of the calf again. I took hold of the ears of the moose, while Joe pushed his canoe down stream toward a favourable shore, and so we made out, though with some difficulty, its long nose frequently sticking in the bottom, to drag it into still shallower water. It was a brownish black, or perhaps a dark iron-gray, on the back and sides, but lighter beneath and in front. I took the cord which served for the canoe's painter, and with Joe's assistance measured it carefully, the greatest distances first, making a knot each time. The painter being wanted, I reduced these measures that night with equal care to lengths and fractions of my umbrella, beginning with the smallest measures, and untying the knots as I pro- ceeded ; and when we arrived at Chesuncook the next day, finding a two-foot rule there, I reduced the last to feet and inches ; and, moreover, I made myself a two-foot rule of a thin and narrow strip of black ash, which would fold up conveniently to six inches. All this pains I took because I did not wish to be obliged to say merely that the moose was very large. 108 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU Of the various dimensions which I obtained I will mention only two. The distance from the tips of the hoofs of the fore-feet, stretched out, to the top of the back between the shoulders, was seven feet and five inches. I can hardly believe my own measure, for this is about two feet greater than the height of a tall horse. (Indeed, I am now satisfied that this measurement was incorrect, but the other measures given here I can warrant to be correct, having proved them in a more recent visit to those woods.) The extreme length was eight feet and two inches. Another cow-moose, which I have since measured in those woods with a tape, was just six feet from the tip of the hoof to the shoulders, and eight feet long as she lay. When afterward I asked an Indian at the carry how much taller the male was, he answered, " Eighteen inches," and made me observe the height of a cross- stake over the fire, more than four feet from the ground, to give me some idea of the depth of his chest Another Indian, at Oldtown, told me that they were nine feet high to the top of the back, and that one which he tried weighed eight hundred pounds. The length of the spinal projections between the shoulders is very great. A white hunter, who was the best authority among hunters that I could have, told me that the male was not eighteen inches taller than the female ; yet he agreed that he was sometimes nine feet high to the top of the back, and weighed a thousand pounds. Only the male has horns, and they rise two feet or more above the MUKDEK OF THE MOOSE 109 shoulders, — spreading three or four, and sometimes six feet, — which would make him in all, sometimes, eleven feet high ! According to this calculation, the moose is as tall, though it may not be as large, as the great Irish elk, Megaceros Hibernicus, of a former period, of which Mantell says that it "very far exceeded in magnitude any living species, the skele- ton " being " upward of ten feet high from the ground to the highest point of the antlers." Joe said, that, though the moose shed the whole horn annually, each new horn has an additional prong ; but I have noticed that they sometimes have more prongs on one side than on the other. I was struck with the delicacy and tenderness of the hoofs, which divide very far up, and the one half could be pressed very much behind the other, thus probably making the animal surer-footed on the uneven ground and slippery moss- covered logs of the primitive forest. They were very unlike the stiff and battered feet of our horses and oxen. The bare, horny part of the fore-foot was just six inches long, and the two portions could be separated four inches at the extremities. The moose is singularly grotesque and awkward to look at. Why should it stand so high at the shoulders ? Why have so long a head ? Why have no tail to speak of? for in my examination I over- looked it entirely. Naturalists say it is an inch and a half long. It reminded me at once of the camelo- pard, high before and low behind, — and no wonder, for, like it, it is fitted to browse on trees. The upper lip projected two inches beyond the lower for this 110 SELECTIONS FKOM THOEEAU purpose. This was the kind of man that was at home there; for, as near as I can learn, that has never been the residence, but rather the hunting- ground of the Indian. The moose will perhaps one day become extinct ; but how naturally then, when it exists only as a fossil relic, and unseen as that, may the poet or sculptor invent a fabulous animal with similar branching and leafy horns, — a sort of fucus or lichen in bone, — to be the inhabitant of such a forest as this ! Here, just at the head of the murmuring rapids, Joe now proceeded to skin the moose with a pocket- knife, while I looked on ; and a tragical business it was, — to see that still warm and palpitating body pierced with a knife, to see the warm milk stream from the rent udder, and the ghastly naked red carcass appearing from within its seemly robe, which was made to hide it. The ball had passed through the shoulder-blade diagonally and lodged under the skin on the opposite side, and was partially flattened. My companion keeps it to show to his grandchildrea He has the shanks of another moose which he has since shot, skinned and stuffed, ready to be made into boots by putting in a thick leather sole. Joe said, if a moose stood fronting you, you must not fire, but advance toward him, for he will turn slowly and give you a fair shot. In the bed of this narrow, wild, and rocky stream, between two lofty walls of spruce and firs, a mere cleft in the forest which the stream had made, this work went on. At length Joe had stripped off the hide and dragged it trailing to the shore, MUEDEE OF THE MOOSE 111 declaring that it weighed a hundred pounds, though probably fifty would have been nearer the truth. He cut off a large mass of the meat to carry along, and another, together with the tongue and nose, he put with the hide on the shore to lie there all night, or till we returned. I was surprised that he thought of leaving this meat thus exposed by the side of the carcass, as the simplest course, not fearing that any creature would touch it; but nothing did. This could hardly have happened on the bank of one of our rivers in the eastern part of Massachusetts ; but I suspect that fewer small wild animals are prowling there than with us. Twice, however, in this excursion I had a glimpse of a species of large mouse. This stream was so withdrawn, and the moose- tracks were so fresh, that my companions, still bent on hunting, concluded to go farther up it and camp, and then hunt up or down at night. Half a mile above this, at a place where I saw the aster puniceus and the beaked hazel, as we paddled along, Joe, hearing a slight rustling amid the alders, and seeing something black about two rods off, jumped up and whispered, " Bear ! " but before the hunter had dis- charged his piece, he corrected himself to " Beaver ! " — " Hedgehog ! " The bullet killed a large hedgehog more than two feet and eight inches long. The quills were rayed out and flattened on the hinder part of its back, even as if it had lain on that part, but were erect and long between this and the tail. Their points, closely examined, were seen to be finely 112 SELECTIONS FROM THOREAU bearded or barbed, and shaped like an awl, that is, a little concave, to give the barbs effect. After about a mile of still water, we prepared our camp on the right side, just at the foot of a considerable fall. Little chopping was done that night, for fear of scaring the moose. We had moose-meat fried for supper. It tasted like tender beef, with perhaps more flavour, — sometimes like veal. After supper, the moon having risen, we proceeded to hunt a mile up this stream, first " carrying " about the falls. We made a picturesque sight, wending single-file along the shore, climbing over rocks and logs, — Joe, who brought up the rear, twirling his canoe in his hands as if it were a feather, in places where it was difi&cult to get along without a burden. We launched the canoe again from the ledge over which the stream fell, but after half a mile of still water, suitable for hunting, it became rapid again, and we were compelled to make our way along the shore, while Joe endeavoured to get up in the birch alone, though it was still very difficult for him to pick his way amid the rocks in the night. We on the shore found the worst of walking, a perfect chaos of fallen and drifted trees, and of bushes projecting far over the water, and now and then we made our way across the mouth of a small tributary on a kind of network of alders. So we went tumbling on in the dark, being on the shady side, effectually scaring all the moose and bears that might be thereabouts. At length we came to a standstill, and Joe went forward to reconnoitre ; but he reported that it was MURDER OF THE MOOSE 113 still a continuous rapid as far as he went, or half a mile, with no prospect of improvement, as if it were coming down from a mountain. So we turned about, hunting back to the camp through the still water. It was a splendid moonlight night, and I, getting sleepy as it grew late, — for I had nothing to do, — found it difficult to realise where I was. This stream was much more unfrequented than the main one, lumbering operations being no longer carried on in this quarter. It was only three or four rods wide, but the firs and spruce through which it trickled seemed yet taller by contrast. Being in this dreamy state, which the moonlight enhanced, I did not clearly discern the shore, but seemed, most of the time, to be floating through ornamental grounds, — for I asso- ciated the fir-tops with such scenes ; — very high up some Broadway, and beneath or between their tops, I thought I saw an endless succession of porticoes and columns, cornices and fa9ades, verandas and churches. I did not merely fancy this, but in my drowsy state such was the illusion. I fairly lost myself in sleep several times, still dreaming of that architecture and the nobility that dwelt behind and might issue from it ; but all at once I would be aroused and brought back to a sense of my actual position by the sound of Joe's birch horn in the midst of all this silence calling the moose, ugh, ugh, oo-oo-oo-oo-oo-oo, and I prepared to hear a furious moose come rushing and crashing through the forest, and see him burst out on to the little strip of meadow by our side. But, on more accounts than one, I had had enough 114 SELECTIONS FROM THOKEAU of moose-hunting. I had not come to the woods for this purpose, nor had I foreseen it, though I had been willing to learn how the Indian manoeuvred ; but one moose killed was as good, if not as bad, as a dozen. The afternoon's tragedy, and my share in it, as it affected the innocence, destroyed the pleasure of my adventure. It is true, I came as near as is possible to come to being a hunter and miss it, myself ; and as it is, I think that I could spend a year in the woods, fishing and hunting, just enough to sustain myself, with satisfaction. This would be next to living like a philosopher on the fruits of the earth which you had raised, which also attracts me. But this hunting of the moose merely for the satisfaction of killing him, — not even for the sake of his hide, — without making any extraordinary exertion or run- ning any risk yourself, is too much like going out by night to some wood-side pasture and shooting your neighbour's horses. These are God's own horses, poor, timid creatures, that will run fast enough as soon as they smell you, though they are nine feet high. Joe told us of some hunters who a year or two before had shot down several oxen by night, somewhere in the Maine woods, mistaking them for moose. And so might any of the hunters; and what is the difference in the sport, but the name? In the former case, having killed one of God's and your own oxen, you strip off its hide, — because that is the common trophy, and, moreover, you have heard that it may be sold for moccasins, — cut a steak from its haunches, and leave the huge carcass to smell to MURDER OF THE MOOSE 115 heaven for you. It is no better, at least, than to assist at a slaughter-house. This afternoon's experience suggested to me how base or coarse are the motives which commonly carry men into the wilderness. The explorers and lum- berers generally are all hirelings, paid so much a day for their labour, and as such they have no more love for wild nature than wood-sawers have for forests. Other white men and Indians who come here are for the most part hunters, whose object is to slay as many moose and other wild animals as possible. But, pray, could not one spend some weeks or years in the solitude of this vast wilderness with other employments than these, — employments perfectly sweet and innocent and ennobling? For one that comes with a pencil to sketch or sing, a thousand come with an axe or rifle. What a coarse and imperfect use Indians and hunters make of Nature ! No wonder that their race is so soon exterminated. I already, and for weeks afterward, felt my nature the coarser for this part of my woodland experience, and was reminded that our life should be lived as tenderly and daintily as one would pluck a flower. With these thoughts, when we reached our camp- ing-ground, I decided to leave my companions to continue moose-hunting down the stream, while I prepared the camp, though they requested me not to chop much nor make a large fire, for fear I should scare their game. In the midst of the damp fir-wood, high on the mossy bank, about nine o'clock of this bright moonlight night, I kindled a fire, when they 116 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU were gone, and, sitting on the fir-twigs, within sound of the falls, examined by its light the botanical specimens which I had collected that afternoon, and wrote down some of the reflections which I have here expanded ; or I walked along the shore and gazed up the stream, where the whole space above the falls was filled with mellow light. As I sat before the fire on my fir-twig seat, without walls above or around me, I remembered how far on every hand that wilderness stretched, before you came to cleared or cultivated fields, and wondered if any bear or moose was watching the light of my fire ; for Nature looked sternly upon me on account of the murder of the moose. Strange that so few ever come to the woods to see how the pine lives and grows and spires, lifting its evergreen arms to the light, — to see its perfect success; but most are content to behold it in the shape of many broad boards brought to market, and deem that its true success ! But the pine is no more lumber than man is, and to be made into boards and houses is no more its true and highest use than the truest use of a man is to be cut down and made into manure. There is a higher law afi'ecting our relation to pines as well as to men. A pine cut down, a dead pine, is no more a pine than a dead human carcass is a man. Can he who has discovered only some of the values of whalebone and whale oil be said to have discovered the true use of the whale ? Can he who slays the elephant for his ivory be said to have " seen the elephant " ? These are petty and accidental uses ; just as if a stronger race were to kill us in order to MUEDEE OF THE MOOSE 117 make buttons and flageolets of our bones ; for every- thing may serve a lower as well as a higher use. Every creature is better alive than dead, men and moose and pine-trees, and he who understands it aright will rather preserve its life than destroy it. Is it the lumberman, then, who is the friend and lover of the pine, stands nearest to it, and understands its nature best ? Is it the tanner who has barked it, or he who has boxed it for turpentine, whom posterity will fable to have been changed into a pine at last ? No ! no ! it is the poet ; he it is who makes the truest use of the pine, — who does not fondle it with an axe, nor tickle it with a saw, nor stroke it with a plane, — who knows whether its heart is false without cutting into it, — ^who has not bought the stumpage of the township on which it stands. All the pines shudder and heave a sigh when that man steps on the forest floor. No, it is the poet, who loves them as his own shadow in the air, and lets them stand. I have been into the lumber-yard, and the carpenter's shop, and the tannery, and the lampblack-factory, and the turpentine clearing ; but when at length I saw the tops of the pines waving and reflecting the light at a distance high over all the rest of the forest, I realised that the former were not the highest use of the pine. It is not their bones or hide or tallow that I love most. It is the living spirit of the tree, not its spirit of turpentine, with which I sympathise, and which heals my cuts. It is as immortal as I am, and perchance will go to as high a heaven, there to tower above me still. FOKEST PHENOMENA When we got to the camp, the canoe was taken out and turned over, and a log laid across it to prevent its being blown away. The Indian cut some large logs of damp and rotten hard-wood to smoulder and keep fire through the night. The trout was fried for supper. Our tent was of thin cotton cloth and quite small, forming with the ground a triangular prism closed at the rear end, six feet long, seven wide, and four high, so that we could barely sit up in the middle. It required two forked stakes, a smooth ridge-pole, and a dozen or more pins to pitch it. It kept off dew and wind, and an ordinary rain, and answered our purpose well enough. We reclined within, it till bedtime, each with his baggage at his head, or else sat about the fire, having hung our wet clothes on a pole before the fire for the night. As we sat there, just before night, looking out through the dusky wood, the Indian heard a noise which he said was made by a snake. He imitated it at my request, making a low whistling note, — pheet — FOREST PHENOMENA 119 pheet, — two or three times repeated, somewhat like the peep of the hylodes, but not so loud. In answer to my inquiries, he said that he had never seen them while making it, but going to the spot he iinds the snake. This, he said on another occasion, was a sign of rain. When I had selected this place for our camp, he had remarked that there were snakes there,- — he saw them. "But they won't do any hurt," I said. " no," he answered, " just as you say, it makes no difference to me." He lay on the right side of the tent, because, as he said, he was partly deaf in one ear, and he wanted to lie with his good ear up. As we lay there, he inquired if I ever heard "Indian sing.'' I replied that I had not often, and asked him if he would not favour us with a song. He readily assented, and lying on his back, with his blanket wrapped around him, he commenced a slow, somewhat nasal, yet musical chant, in his own language, which probably was taught his tribe long ago by the Catholic mis- sionaries. He translated it to us, sentence by sentence, afterward, wishing to see if we could remember it. It proved to be a very simple religious exercise or hymn, the burden of which was, that there was only one God who ruled all the world. This was hammered (or sung) out very thin, so that some stanzas well-nigh meant nothing at all, merely keeping up the idea. He then said that he would sing us a Latin song; but we did not detect any Latin, only one or two Greek words in it, — the rest may have been Latin with the Indian pronunciation. 120 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU His singing carried me back to the period of the discovery of America, to San Salvador and the Incas, when Europeans first encountered the simple faith of the Indian. There was, indeed, a beautiful simplicity about it ; nothing of the dark and savage, only the mild and infantile. The sentiments of humility and reverence chiefly were expressed. It was a dense and damp spruce and fir wood in which we lay, and, except for our fire, perfectly dark ; and when I awoke in the night, I either heard an owl from deeper in the forest behind us, or a loon from a distance over the lake. Getting up some time after midnight to collect the scattered brands together, while my companions were sound asleep, I observed, partly in the fire, which had ceased to blaze, a per- fectly regular elliptical ring of light, about five inches in its shortest diameter, six or seven in its longer, and from one eighth to one quarter of an inch wide. It was fully as bright as the fire, but not reddish or scarlet like a coal, but a white and slumbering light, like the glowworm's. I could tell it from the fire only by its whiteness. I saw at once that it must be phosphorescent wood, which I had so often heard of, but never chanced to see. Putting my finger on it, with a little hesitation, I found that it was a piece of dead moose-wood {Acer striatum) which the Indian had cut off' in a slanting direction the evening before. Using my knife, I discovered that the light proceeded from that portion of the sap-wood immediately under the bark, and thus presented a regular ring at the end, which, indeed, appeared raised above the level FOREST PHENOMENA 121 of the wood, and when I pared off the bark and cut into the sap, it was all aglow along the log. I was surprised to find the wood quite hard and apparently sound, though probably decay had commenced in the sap, and I cut out some little triangular chips, and placing them in the hollow of my hand, carried them into the camp, waked my companion, and showed them to him. They lit up the inside of my hand, revealing the lines and wrinkles, and appearing exactly like coals of fire raised to a white heat, and I saw at once how, probably, the Indian jugglers had imposed on their people and on travellers, pretending to hold coals of fire in their mouths. I also noticed that part of a decayed stump within four or five feet of the fire, an inch wide and six inches long, soft and shaking wood, shone with equal brightness. I neglected to ascertain whether our fire had any- thing to do with this, but the previous day's rain and long-continued wet weather undoubtedly had. I was exceedingly interested by this phenomenon, and already felt paid for my journey. It could hardly have thrilled me more if it had taken the form of letters, or of the human face. If I had met with this ring of light while groping in this forest alone, away from any fire, I should have been still more surprised. I little thought that there was such a light shining in the darkness of the wilderness for me. The next day the Indian told me their name for this light, — Artoosogu', — and on my inquiring concern- 122 SELECTIONS FROM THOKEAU ing the will-o'-the-wisp, and the like phenomena, he said that his "folks" sometimes saw fires passing along at various heights, even as high as the trees, and making a noise. I was prepared after this to hear of the most startling and unimagined phenomena witnessed by " his folks," they are abroad at all hours and seasons in scenes so unfrequented by white men. Nature must have made a thousand revelations to them which are still secrets to us. I did not regret my not having seen this before, since I now saw it under circumstances so favourable. I was in just the frame of mind to see something wonderful, and this was a phenomenon adequate to my circumstances and expectation, and it put me on the alert to see more like it. I exulted like " a pagan suckled in a creed " that had never been worn at all, but was bran new, and adequate to the occasion. I let science slide, and rejoiced in that light as if it had been a fellow-creature. I saw that it was excellent, and was very glad to know that it was so cheap. A scientific explanation, as it is called, would have been altogether out of place there. That is for pale day- light. Science with its retorts would have put me to sleep ; it was the opportunity to be ignorant that I improved. It suggested to me that there was some- thing to be seen if one had eyes. It made a believer of me more than before. I belie\'ed that the woods were not tenantless, but choke-full of honest spirits as good as myself any day, — not an empty chamber, in which chemistry was left to work alone, but an inhabited house, — and for a few moments I enjoyed FOREST PHENOMENA 123 fellowship with them. Your so-called wise man goes trying to persuade himself that there is no entity there but himself and his traps, but it is a great deal easier to believe the truth. It suggested, too, that the same experience always gives birth to the same sort of belief or religion. One revelation has been made to the Indian, another to the white man. I have much to learn of the Indian, nothing of the missionary. I am not sure but all that would tempt me to teach the Indian my religion would be his promise to teach me his. Long enough I had heard of irrelevant things ; now at length I was glad to make acquaintance with the light that dwells in rotten wood. Where is all your knowledge gone to ? It evaporates completely, for it has no depth. I kept those little chips and wet them again the next night, but they emitted no light. THE SHIPWEECK Wishing to get a better view than I had yet had of the ocean, which, we are told, covers more than two- thirds of the globe, but of which a man who lives a few miles inland may never see any trace, more than of another world, I made a visit to Cape Cod in October 1849, another the succeeding June, and another to Truro in July 1855; the first and last time with a single companion, the second time alone. I have spent, in all, about three weeks on the Cape ; walked from Eastham to Provincetown twice on the Atlantic side, and once on the Bay side also,, except- ing four or five miles, and crossed the Cape half a dozen times on my way ; but having come so fresh to the sea, I have got but little salted. My readers must expect only so much saltness as the land breeze acquires from blowing over an arm of the sea, or is tasted on the windows and the bark of trees twenty miles inland, after Septembei' gales. I have been accustomed to make excursions to the ponds within ten miles of Concord, but latterly I have extended my excursions to the seashore. THE SHIPWEECK 125 I did not see why I might not make a book on Cape Cod, as well as my neighbour on Human Culture. It is but another name for the same thing, and hardly a sandier phase of it. As for my title, I suppose that the word Cape is from the French cap ; which is from the Latin caput, a head ; which is, perhaps, from the verb capere, to take, — that being the part by which we take hold of a thing : — Take Time by the forelock. It is also the safest part to take a serpent by. And as for Cod, that was derived directly from that "great store of cod-fish" which Captain Bartholomew Gosnold caught there in 1602; which fish appears to have been so called from the Saxon word codde, " a case in which seeds are lodged," either from the form of the fish, or the quantity of spawn it contains ; whence also, perhaps, codling ("pomum coctile " ?) and coddle, — to cook green like peas. (V. Die.) Cape Cod is the bared and bended arm of Massa- chusetts : the shoulder is at Buzzard's Bay ; the elbow, or crazy-bone, at Cape Mallebarre; the wrist at Truro ; and the sandy fist at Provincetown, — behind which the State stands on her guard, with her back to the Green Mountains, and her feet planted on the floor of the ocean, like an athlete protecting her Bay, — boxing with north-east storms, and, ever and anon, heaving up her Atlantic adver- sary from the lap of earth, — ready to thrust forward her other fist, which keeps guard the while upon her breast at Cape Ann. On studying the map, I saw that there must be 126 SELECTIONS FROM THOREAU an uninterrupted beach on the east or outside of the forearm of the Cape, more than thirty miles from the general line of the coast, which would afford a good sea view, but that, on account of an opening in the beach, forming the entrance to Nauset Harbour, in Orleans, I must strike it in Eastham, if I approached it by land, and probably I could walk thence straight to Eace Point, about twenty -eight miles, and not meet with any obstruction. We left Concord, Massachusetts, on Tuesday, 9th October 1849. On reaching Boston, we found that the Provincetown steamer, which should have got in the day before, had not yet arrived, on account of a violent storm ; and, as we noticed in the streets a handbill headed, " Death ! one hundred and forty- five lives lost at Cohasset," we decided to go by way of Cohasset. We found many Irish in the cars, going to identify bodies and to sympathise with the sur- vivors, and also to attend the funeral which was to take place in the afternoon ; — and when we arrived at Cohasset, it appeared that nearly all the passengers were bound for the beach, which was about a mile distant, and many other persons were flocking in from the neighbouring country. There were several hundreds of them streaming oflF over Cohasset common in that direction, some on foot and some in waggons, — and among them were some sportsmen in their hunting-jackets, with their guns, and game-bags, and dogs. As we passed the graveyard we saw a large hole, like a cellar, freshly dug there, and, just before reaching the shore, by a pleasantly winding and THE SHIPWRECK 127 rocky road, we met several hay-riggings and farm- waggons coming away toward the meeting-house, each loaded with three large, rough deal boxes. We did not need to ask what was in them. The owners of the waggons were made the undertakers. Many horses in carriages were fastened to the fences near the shore, and, for a mile or more, up and down, the beach was covered with people looking out for bodies, and examining the fragments of the wreck. There was a small island called Brook Island, with a hut on it, lying just off the shore. This is said to be the rockiest shore in Massachusetts, from Nantasket to Scituate, — hard sienitic rocks, which the waves have laid bare, but have not been able to crumble. It has been the scene of many a shipwreck. The brig St. John, from Galway, Ireland, laden with emigrants, was wrecked on Sunday morning; it was now Tuesday morning, and the sea was still breaking violently on the rocks. There were eighteen or twenty of the same large boxes that I have men- tioned, lying on a green hillside, a few rods from the water, and surrounded by a crowd. The bodies which had been recovered, twenty-seven or eight in all, had been collected there. Some were rapidly nailing down the lids, others were carting the boxes away, and others were lifting the lids, which were yet loose, and peeping under the cloths, for each body, with such rags as still adhered to it, was covered loosely with a white sheet. I witnessed no signs of grief, but there was a sober dispatch of business which was affecting. One man was seeking 128 SELECTIONS FROM THOREAU to identify a particular body, and one undertaker or carpenter was calling to another to know in what box a certain child was put. I saw many marble feet and matted heads as the cloths were raised, and one livid, swollen, and mangled body of a drowned girl, — who probably had intended to go out to service in some American family, — to which some rags still adhered, with a string, half concealed by the flesh, about its swollen neck ; the coiled-up wreck of a human hulk, gashed by the rocks or fishes, so that the bone and muscle were exposed, but quite bloodless, — merely red and white, — with wide-open and staring eyes, yet lustreless, deadlights ; or like the cabin windows of a stranded vessel, filled with sand. Sometimes there were two or more children, or a parent and child, in the same box, and on the lid would perhaps be written with red chalk, " Bridget such-a-one, and sister's child." The surrounding sward was covered with bits of sails and clothing. I have since heard, from one who lives by this beach, that a woman who had come over before, but had left her infant behind for her sister to bring, came and looked into these boxes, and saw in one — prob- ably the same whose superscription I hare quoted — her child in her sister's arms, as if the sister had meant to be found thus ; and within three days after, the mother died from the effect of that sight. We turned from this and walked along the rocky shore. In the first cove were strewn what seemed the fragments of a vessel, in small pieces mixed with sand and seaweed, and great quantities of feathers ; THE SHIPWRECK 129 but it looked so old and rusty, that I at first took it to be some old wreck which had lain there many years. I even thought of Captain Kidd, and that the feathers were those which sea-fowl had cast there ; and perhaps there might be some tradition about it in the neighbourhood. I asked a sailor if that was the St. John. He said it was. I asked him where she struck. He pointed to a rock in front of us, a mile from the shore, called the Grampus Rock, and added, — " You can see a part of her now sticking up ; it looks like a small boat." I saw it. It was thought to be held by the chain- cables and the anchors. I asked if the bodies which I saw were all that were drowned. " Not a quarter of them," said he. " Where are the rest 1 " "Most of them right underneath that piece you see." It appeared to us that there was enough rubbish to make the wreck of a large vessel in this cove alone, and that it would take many days to cart it off. It was several feet deep, and here and there was a bonnet or a jacket on it. In the very midst of the crowd about this wreck, there were men with carts busily collecting the seaweed which the storm had cast up, and conveying it beyond the reach of the tide, though they were often obhged to separate fragments of clothing from it, and they might at any moment have found a human body under it. Drown who might, they did not forget that this K 130 SELECTIONS FEOM THOEEAU weed was a valuable manure. This shipwreck had not produced a visible vibration in the fabric of society. About a mile south we could see, rising above the rocks, the masts of the British brig which the St. John had endeavoured to follow, which had slipped her cables, and, by good luck, run into the mouth of Cohasset Harbour. A little farther along the shore we saw a man's clothes on a rock; farther, a woman's scarf, a gown, a straw bonnet, the brig's caboose, and one of her masts high and dry, broken into several pieces. In another rocky cove, several rods from the water, and behind rocks twenty feet high, lay a part of one side of the vessel, still hanging together. It was, perhaps, forty feet long, by four- teen wide. I was even more surprised at the power of the waves, exhibited on this shattered fragment, than I had been at the sight of the smaller fragments before. The largest timbers and iron braces were broken superfluously, and I saw that no material could withstand the power of the waves ; that iron must go to pieces in such a case, and an iron vessel would be cracked up like an egg-shell on the rocks. Some of these timbers, however, were so rotten that I could almost thrust my umbrella through them. They told us that some were saved on this piece, and also showed where the sea had heaved it into this cove which was now dry. When I saw where it had come in, and in what condition, I wondered that any had been saved on it. A little farther on a crowd of men was collected around the mate of the St. John, THE SHIPWRECK 131 who was telling his story. He was a slim-looking youth, who spoke of the captain as the master, and seeined a little excited. He was saying that when they jumped into the boat, she filled, and, the vessel lurching, the weight of the water in the boat caused the painter to break, and so they were separated. Whereat one man came away, saying, — "Well, I don't see but he tells a straight story enough. You see, the weight of the water in the boat broke the painter. A boat full of water is very heavy," — and so on, in a loud and impertinently earnest tone, as if he had a bet depending on it, but had no humane interest in the matter. Another, a large man, stood near by upon a rock, gazing into the sea, and chewing large quids of tobacco, as if that habit were for ever confirmed with him. "Come," says another to his companion, "let's be off. We've seen the whole of it. It's no use to stay to the funeral." Further, we saw one standing upon a rock, who, we were told, was one that was saved. He was a sober- looking man, dressed in a jacket and gray pantaloons, with his hands in the pockets. I asked him a few questions, which he answered j but he seemed un- willing to talk about it, and soon walked away. By his side stood one of the lifeboat men, in an oil-cloth jacket, who told us how they went to the relief of the British brig, thinking that the boat of the St. John, which they passed on the way, held all her crew, — for the waves prevented their seeing those 132 SELECTIONS FEOM THOEBATT who were on the vessel, though they might have saved some had they known there were any there. A little farther was the flag of the St. John spread on a rock to dry, and held down by stones at the corners. This frail, but essential and significant portion of the vessel, which had so long been the sport of the winds, was sure to reach the shore. There were one or two houses visible from these rocks, in which were some of the survivors recover- ing from the shock which their bodies and minds had sustained. One was not expected to live. "We kept on down the shore as far as a promontory called Whitehead, that we might see more of the Cohasset Rocks. In a little cove, within half a mile, there were an old man and his son collecting, with their team, the seaweed which that fatal storm had cast up, as serenely employed as if there had never been a wreck in the world, though they were within sight of the Grrampus Rock, on which the St. John had struck. The old man had heard that there was a wreck and knew most of the particulars, but he said that he had not been up there since it happened. It was the wrecked weed that concerned him most, rockweed, kelp, and seaweed, as he named them, which he carted to his barnyard; and those bodies were to him but other weeds which the tide cast up, but which were of no use to him. We afterwards came to the lifeboat in its harbour, waiting for another emergency, — and in the afternoon we saw the funeral procession at a distance, at the head of which walked the captain with the other survivors. THE SHIPWRECK 133 On the whole, it was not so impressive a scene as I might have expected. If I had found one body cast upon the beach in some lonely place, it would have affected me more. I sympathised rather with the winds and waves, as if to toss and mangle these poor human bodies was the order of the day. If this was the law of Nature, why waste any time in awe or pity "! If the last day were come, we should not think so much about the separation of friends or the blighted prospects of individuals. I saw that corpses might be multiplied, as on the field of battle, till they no longer affected us in any degree, as exceptions to the common lot of humanity. Take all the graveyards together, they are always the majority. It is the individual and private that demands our sympathy. A man can attend but one funeral in the course of his life, can behold but one corpse. Yet I saw that the inhabitants of the shore would be not a little affected by this event. They would watch there many days and nights for the sea to give up its dead, and their imaginations and sympathies would supply the place of mourners far away, who as yet knew not of the wreck. Many days after this, something white was seen floating on the water by one who was sauntering on the beach. It was approached in a boat, and found to be the body of a woman, which had risen in an upright position, whose white cap was blown back with the wind. I saw that the beauty of the shore itself was wrecked for many a lonely walker there, until he could perceive, at last, how its beauty was enhanced 134 SELECTIONS FROM THOEBAU by wrecks like this, and it acquired thus a rarer and sublimer beauty still. Why care for these dead bodies? They really have no friends but the worms or fishes. Their owners were coming to the New World, as Columbus and the Pilgrims did, — they were within a mile of its shores ; but, before they could reach it, they emigrated to a newer world than ever Columbus dreamed of, yet one of whose existence we believe that there is far more universal and convincing evidence — though it has not yet been discovered by science — than Columbus had of this: not merely mariners' tales and some paltry driftwood and sea- weed, but a continual drift and instinct to all our shores. I saw their empty hulks that came to land ; but they themselves, meanwhile, were cast upon some shore yet farther west, toward which we are all tending, and which we shall reach at last, it may be through storm and darkness, as they did. No doubt, we have reason to thank God that they have not been "shipwrecked into life again." The mariner who makes the safest port in heaven, perchance, seems to his friends on earth to be shipwrecked, for they deem Boston Harbour the better place ; though perhaps invisible to them, a skilful pilot comes to meet him, and the fairest and balmiest gales blow off that coast, his good ship makes the land in hal- cyon days, and he kisses the shore in rapture there, while his old hulk tosses in the surf here. It is hard to part with one's body, but, no doubt, it is easy enough to do without it when once it is gone. All THE SHIPWRECK 135 their plans and hopes burst like a bubble ! Infants by the score dashed on the rocks by the enraged Atlantic Ocean ! No, no ! If the St. John did not make her port here, she has been telegraphed there. The strongest wind cannot stagger a Spirit ; it is a Spirit's breath. A just man's purpose cannot be split on any Grampus or material rock, but itself will split rocks till it succeeds. THE BEACH At length we reached the seemingly retreating bound- ary of the plain, and entered what had appeared at a distance an upland marsh, but proved to be dry sand covered with beach -grass, the bearberry, bayberry, shrub -oaks, and beach -plum, slightly ascending as we approached the shore ; then, crossing over a belt of sand on which nothing grew, though the roar of the sea sounded scarcely louder than before, and we were prepared to go half a mile farther, we suddenly stood on the edge of a bluff overlooking the Atlantic. Far below us was the beach, from half a dozen to a dozen rods in width, with a long line of breakers rushing to the strand. The sea was exceedingly dark and stormy, the sky completely overcast, the clouds still dropping rain, and the wind seemed to blow not so much as the exciting cause, as from sympathy with the already agitated ocean. The waves broke on the bars at some distance from the shore, and curving green or yellow as if over so many unseen dams, ten or twelve feet high, like a thousand waterfalls, rolled in foam to the sand. THE BEACH 137 There was nothing but that savage ocean between us and Europe. Having got down the bank, and as close to the water as we could, where the sand was the hardest, leaving the Nauset Lights behind us, we began to walk leisurely up the beach, in a north-west direction, toward Provincetown, which was about twenty-five miles distant, still sailing under our umbrellas with a strong aft wind, admiring in silence, as we walked, the great force of the ocean stream, — The white breakers were rushing to the shore; the foam ran up the sand, and then ran back as far as we could see (and we imagined how much farther along the Atlantic coast, before and behind us), as regularly, to compare great things with, small, as the master of a choir beats time with his white wand ; and ever and anon a higher wave caused us hastily to deviate from our path, and we looked back on our tracks filled with water and foam. The breakers looked Kke droves of a thousand wild horses of Neptune, rushing to the shore, with their white manes stream- ing far behind ; and when, at length, the sun shone for a moment, their manes were rainbow-tinted. Also, the long kelp-weed was tossed up from time to time, like the tails of sea-cows sporting in the brine. There was not a sail in sight, and we saw none that day, — ^for they had all sought harbours in the late storm, and had not been able to get out again ; and the only human beings whom we saw on the 138 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU beach for several days were one or two wreckers looking for drift-wood, and fragments of wrecked vessels. After an easterly storm in the spring, this beach is sometimes strewn with eastern wood from one end to the other, which, as it belongs to him who saves it, and the Cape is nearly destitute of wood, is a godsend to the inhabitants. We soon met one of these wreckers, — a regular Cape Cod man, with whom we parleyed, with a bleached and weather-beaten face, within whose wrinkles I distinguished no particular feature. It was like an old sail endowed with life, — a hanging-cliff of weather-beaten flesh, — like one of the clay boulders which occurred in that sand-bank. He had on a hat which had seen salt water, and a coat of many pieces and colours, though it was mainly the colour of the beach^ as if it had been sanded. His variegated back — for his coat had many patches, even between the shoulders — was a rich study to us when we had passed him and looked round. It might have been dishonourable for him to have so many scars behind, it is true, if he had not had many more and more serious ones in front. He looked as if he sometimes saw a dough-nut, but never descended to comfort ; too grave to laugh, too tough to cry ; as indiff'erent as a clam, — like a sea-clam with hat on and legs, that was out walking the strand. He may have been one of the Pilgrims, — Peregrine White, at least, — who has kept on the back side of the Cape, and let the centuries go by. He was looking for wrecks, old logs, water-logged and covered with barnacles, or bits of boards and joists, even THE BEACH 139 chips which he drew out of the reach of the tide, and stacked up to dry. When the log was too large to carry far, he cut it up where the last wave had left it, or rolling it a few feet, appropriated it by sticking two sticks into the ground crosswise above it. Some rotten trunk, which in Maine cumbers the ground, and is, perchance, thrown into the water on purpose, is here thus carefully picked up, split and dried, and husbanded. Before vnnter the wrecker painfully carries these things up the bank on his shoulders by a long diagonal slanting path made with a hoe in the sand, if there is no hollow at hand. You may see his hooked pike-staff always lying on the bank, ready for use. He is the true monarch of the beach, whose " right there is none to dispute," and he is as much identified with it as a beach-bird. Crantz, in his account of Greenland, quotes Dalagen's relation of the ways and usages of the Grreenlanders, and says, " Whoever finds drift-wood, or the spoils of a shipwreck on the strand, enjoys it as his own, though he does not live thera But he must haul it ashore and lay a stone upon it, as a token that some one has taken possession of it, and this stone is the deed of security, for no other Green- lander will offer to meddle with it afterwards," Such is the instinctive law of nations. We have also this account of drift-wood in Orantz : "As he (the Founder of Nature) has denied this frigid rocky region the growth of trees, he has bid the streams of the Ocean to convey to its shores a great deal of wood, which accordingly comes floating thither, part 140 SELECTIONS FROM THOREAU without ice, but the most part along with it, and lodges itself between the islands. Were it not for this, we Europeans should have no wood to burn there, and the poor Greenlanders (who, it is true, do not use wood, but train, for burning) would, however, have no wood to roof their houses, to erect their tents, as also to build their boats, and to shaft their arrows (yet there grew some small but crooked alders, etc.), by which they must procure their maintenance, clothing and train for warmth, light, and cooking. Among this wood are great trees torn up by the roots, which, by driving up and down for many years and rubbing on the ice, are quite bare of branches and bark, and corroded with great wood-worms. A small part of this drift-wood are willows, alder and birch trees, which come out of the bays in the south (i.e. of Greenland) ; also large trunks of aspen trees, which must come from a greater distance ; but the greatest part is pine and fir. We find also a good deal of a sort of wood finely veined, with few branches ; this I fancy is larch-wood, which likes to decorate the sides of lofty, stony mountains. There is also a solid, reddish wood, of a more agreeable fragrance than the common fir, with visible cross-veins ; which I take to be the same species as the beautiful silver-firs, or zirbel, that have the smell of cedar, and grow on the high Grison hills, and the Switzers wainscot their rooms with them." The wrecker directed us to a slight depression, called Snow's Hollow, by which we ascended the bank,^ — for elsewhere, if not difiicult, it was inconvenient to climb it on account of the sliding sand which filled our shoes. THE BEACH 141 This sand-bank — the backbone of the Cape — rose directly from the beach to the height of a hundred feet or more above the ocean. It was with singular emotions that we first stood upon it and discovered what a place we had chosen to walk on. On our right, beneath us, was the beach of smooth and gently- sloping sand, a dozen rods in width ; next, the endless series of white breakers ; farther still, the light green water over the bar, which runs the whole length of the fore-arm of the Cape, and beyond this stretched the unwearied and illimitable ocean. On our left, extending back from the very edge of the bank, was a perfect desert of shining sand, from thirty to eighty rods in width, skirted in the distance by small sand- hills fifteen or twenty feet high; between which, however, in some places, the sand penetrated as much farther. Next commenced the region of vegetation, — a succession of small hills and valleys covered with shrubbery, now glowing with the brightest imaginable autumnal tints ; and beyond this were seen, here and there, the waters of the bay. Here, in Wellfleet, this pure sand plateau, known to sailors as the Table Lands of Eastham, on account of its appearance, as seen from the ocean, and because it once made a part of that town, — full fifty rods in width, and in many places much more, and sometimes full one hundred and fifty feet above the ocean, — stretched away northward from the southern boundary of the town, without a particle of vegetation, — as level almost as a table, — for two and a half or three miles, or as far as the eye could reach ; slightly rising to- 142 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU wards the ocean, then stooping to the beach, by as steep a slope as sand could lie on, and as regular as a military engineer could desire. It was like the escarped rampart of a stupendous fortress, whose glacis was the beach, and whose champaign the ocean. From its surface we overlooked the greater part of the Cape. In short, we were traversing a desert, with the view of an autumnal landscape of extra- ordinary brilliancy, a sort of Promised Land, on the one hand, and the ocean on the other. Yet, though the prospect was so extensive, and the country for the most part destitute of trees, a house was rarely visible, — we never saw one from the beach, — and the solitude was that of the ocean and the desert com- bined. A thousand men could not have seriously interrupted it, but would have been lost in the vast- ness of the scenery as their footsteps in the sand. The whole coast is so free from rocks, that we saw but one or two for more than twenty miles. The sand was soft like the beach, and trying to the eyes, when the sun shone. A few piles of drift-wood, which some wreckers had painfully brought up the bank and stacked up there to dry, being the only objects in the desert, looked indefinitely large and distant, even like wigwams, though, when we stood near them, they proved to be insignificant little " jags " of wood. For sixteen miles, commencing at the Nauset Lights, the bank held its height, though farther north it was not so level as here, but interrupted by slight hollows, and the patches of beach-grass and bayberry frequently crept into the sand to its edge. THE BEACH 143 There are some pages entitled A Description of the Eastern Coast of the County of Barnstable, printed in 1802, pointing out the spots on which the Trustees of the Humane Society have erected huts called Charity or Humane Houses, "and other places where shipwrecked seamen may look for shelter." Two thousand copies of this were dispersed, that every vessel which frequented this coast might be provided with one. I have read this Shipwrecked Seaman's Manual with a melancholy kind of interest, — for the sound of the surf, or, you might say, the moaning of the sea, is heard all through it, as if its author were the sole survivor of a shipwreck himself. Of this part of the coast he says : " This highland approaches the ocean with steep and lofty banks, which it is extremely difficult to climb, especially in a storm. In violent tempests, during very high tides, the sea breaks against the foot of them, rendering it then unsafe to walk on the strand which lies between them and the ocean. Should the seaman succeed in his attempt to ascend them, he must forbear to penetrate into the country, as houses are generally so remote that they would escape his research during the night ; he must pass pn to the valleys by which the banks are intersected. These valleys, which the inhab- itants call Hollows, run at right angles with the shore, and in the middle or lowest part of them a road leads from the dwelling-houses to the sea." By the word road must not always be understood a visible cart-track. There were these two roads for us, — an upper and a lower one, — the bank and the beach ; both 144 SELECTIONS FROM THOBEAU stretching twenty-eight miles north-west, from Nauset Harbour to Race Point, without a single opening into the beach, and with hardly a serious interruption of the desert. If you were to ford the narrow and shallow inlet at Nauset Harbour, where there is not more than eight feet of water on the bar at full sea, you might walk ten or twelve miles farther, which would make a beach forty miles long, — and the bank and beach, on the east side of Nantucket, are but a continuation of these. I was comparatively satisfied. There I had got the Cape under me, as much as if I were riding it barebacked. It was not as on the map, or seen from the stage-coach ; but there I found it all out of doors, huge and real. Cape Cod ! as it cannot be represented on a map, colour it as you will; the thing itself, than which there is nothing more like it, no truer picture or account ; which you cannot go farther and see. I cannot remember what I thought before that it was. They commonly celebrate those beaches only which have a hotel on them, not those which have a humane house alone. But I wished to see that seashore where man's works are wrecks; to put up at the true Atlantic House, where the ocean is land-lord as well as sea-lord, and comes ashore without a wharf for the landing ; where the crumbling land is the only invalid, or at best is but dry land, and that is all you can say of it. We walked on quite at our leisure, now on the beach, now on the bank, — sitting from time to time on some damp log, maple, or yellow birch, which had long followed the seas, but had now at last settled on THE BEACH 145 land; or under the lee of a sand-hill, on the bank, that we might gaze steadily on the ocean. The bank was so steep, that, where there was no danger of its caving, we sat on its edge as on a bench. It was difficult for us landsmen to look out over the ocean without imagining land in the horizon; yet the clouds appeared to hang low over it, and rest on the water as they never do on the land, perhaps on account of the great distance to which we saw. The sand was not without advantage, for, though it was " heavy " walking in it, it was soft to the feet ; and, notwithstanding that it had been raining nearly two days, when it held up for half an hour, the sides of the sand-hills, which were porous and sliding, afforded a dry seat. All the aspects of this desert are beauti- ful, whether you behold it in fair weather or foul, or when the sun is just breaking out after a storm, and shining on its moist surface in the distance, it is so white, and pure, and level, and each slight in- equality and track is so distinctly revealed ; and when your eyes slide off this, they fall on .the ocean. In summer the mackerel-gulls — which here have their nests among the neighbouring sand-hills — pursue the traveller anxiously, now and then diving close to his head with a squeak, and he may see them, like swallows, chase some crow which has been feeding on the beach, almost across the Cape. Though for some time I have not spoken of the roaring of the breakers, and the ceaseless flux and reflux of the waves, yet they did not for a moment cease to dash and roar, with such a tumult that, if L 146 SELECTIONS FEOM THOREA.XJ you had been there, you could scarcely have heard my voice the while; aud they are dashing and roaring this very moment, though it may be with less din and violence, for there the sea never rests. We were wholly absorbed by this spectacle and tumult, and like Chryses, though in a different mood from him, we walked silent along the shore of the resounding sea. Bij S* aKcoiv Trapa diva, 7roAi;^A,ot(r/8oio 6aXacr(r»)s.l I put in a little Greek now and then, partly because it sounds so much like the ocean, — though I doubt if Homer's Mediterranean Sea ever sounded so loud as this. The attention of those who frequent the camp- meetings at Eastham is said to be divided between the preaching of the Methodists and the preaching of the billows on the back side of the Cape, for they all stream over here in the course of their stay. I trust that in this case the loudest voice carries it. With what effect may we suppose the ocean to say, "My hearers !" to the multitude on the bank ! On that side some John N. Maffit ; on this, the Eeverend Poluphloisboios Thalassa. There was but little weed cast up here, and that kelp chiefly, there being scarcely a rock for rock-weed to adhere to. Who has not had a vision from some vessel's deck, when he had still his land legs on, of ■' We have no word iu English to express the sound of many waves dashing at once, whetlier gently or violently ToXvipXoiiT^ows to the car, and, iu the ocean's gentle moods, an dvdpiff/iov ^Aacr/ui to the eye. THE BEACH 147 this great brown apron, drifting half upright, and quite submerged through the green water, clasping a stone or a deep-sea mussel in its unearthly fingers? I have seen it carrying a stone half as large as my head. We sometimes watched a mass of this cable- like weed, as it was tossed up on the crest of a breaker, waiting with interest to see it come in, as if there was some treasure buoyed up by it; but we were always surprised and disappointed at the insig- nificance of the mass which had attracted us. As we looked out over the water, the smallest objects floating on it appeared indefinitely large, we were so impressed by the vastness of the ocean, and each one bore so large a proportion to the whole ocean, which we saw. We were so often disappointed in the size of such things as came ashore, the ridiculous bits of wood or weed, with which the ocean laboured, that we began to doubt whether the Atlantic itself would bear a still closer inspection, and would not turn out to be but a small pond, if it should come ashore to us. This kelp, oar-weed, tangle, devil's apron, sole-leather, or ribbon -weed, — as various species are called, — ■ appeared to us a singularly marine and fabulous product, a fit invention for Neptune to adorn his car with, or a freak of Proteus. All that is told of the sea has a fabulous sound to an inhabitant of the land, and all its products have a certain fabulous quality, as if they belonged to another planet, from seaweed to a sailor's yarn, or a fish story. In this element the animal and vegetable kingdoms meet and are strangely mingled. One species of kelp, according to 148 SELECTIONS FEOM THOEEAU Bory St. Vincent, has a stem fifteen hundred feet long, and hence is the longest vegetable known, and a brig's crew spent two days to no purpose collecting the trunks of another kind cast ashore on the Falk- land Islands, mistaking it for driftwood. ^ This species looked almost edible ; at least, I thought that if I were starving, I would try it. One sailor told me that the cows ate it. It cut like cheese ; for I took the earliest opportunity to sit down and deliberately whittle up a fathom or two of it, that I might become more intimately acquainted with it, see how it cut, and if it were hollow all the way through. The blade looked like a broad belt, whose edges had been quilled, or as if stretched by hammering, and it was also twisted spirally. The extremity was generally worn and ragged from the lashing of the waves. A piece of the stem which I carried home shrunk to one quarter of its size a week afterward, and was com- pletely covered with crystals of salt like frost. The reader will excuse my greenness, — though it is not sea-greenness, like his, perchance, — for I live by a river shore, where this weed does not wash up. When we consider in what meadows it grew, and how it was raked, and in what kind of hay weather got in or out, we may well be curious about it. The beach was also strewn with beautiful sea- jellies, which the wreckers called Sun-squall, one of the lowest forms of animal life, some white, some wine-coloured, and a foot in diameter. I at first ' See Harvey on AIqw. THE BEACH 149 thought that they were a tender part of some marine monster, which the storm or some other foe had mangled. What right has the sea to bear in its bosom such tender things as sea-jellies and mosses, when it has such a boisterous shore, that the stoutest fabrics are wrecked against it? Strange that it should undertake to dandle such delicate children in its arm. I did not at iirst recognise these for the same which I had formerly seen in myriads in Boston Harbour, rising, with a waving motion, to the surface, as if to meet the sun, and discolouring the waters far and wide, so that I seemed to be sailing through a mere sun-fish soup. They say that when you en- deavour to take one up, it will spill out the other side of your hand like quicksilver. Before the land rose out of the ocean, and became dry land, chaos reigned; and between high and low water mark, where she is partially disrobed and rising, a sort of chaos reigns still, which only anomalous creatures can inhabit. Mackerel-gulls were all the while flying over our heads and amid the breakers, sometimes two white ones pursuing a black one ; quite at home in the storm, though they are as delicate organisations as sea-jellies and mosses ; and we saw that they were adapted to their circumstances rather by their spirits than their bodies. Theirs must be an essentially wilder, that is less human, nature, than that of larks and robins. Their note was like the sound of some vibrating metal, and harmonised well with the scenery and the roar of the surf, as if one had rudely touched the strings of the lyre, which ever lies on the shore ; 150 SELECTIONS FROM THOREAU a ragged shred of ocean music tossed aloft on the spray. But if I were required to name a sound, the remembrance of which most perfectly revives the impression which the beach has made, it would be the dreary peep of the piping plover (Oharadrius melodus) which haunts there. Their voices, too, are heard as a fugacious part in the dirge which is ever played along the shore for those mariners who have been lost in the deep since first it was created. But through all this dreariness we seem to have a pure and unqualified strain of eternal melody, for always the same strain which is a dirge to one household is a morning song of rejoicing to another. THE WELLFLEET OYSTEEMAN Having walked about eight miles since we struck the beach, and passed the boundary between Wellfleet and Truro, a stone post in the sand, — for even this sand comes under the jurisdiction of one town or another, — we turned inland over barren hills and valleys, whither the sea, for some reason, did not follow us, and, tracing up a Hollow, discovered two or three sober-looking houses within half a mile, uncommonly near the eastern coast. Their garrets were apparently so full of chambers, that their roofs could hardly lie down straight, and we did not doubt that there was room for us there. Houses near the sea are generally low and broad. These were a story and a half high; but if you merely counted the windows in their gable ends, you would think that there were many stories more, or, at any rate, that the half-story was the only one thought worthy of being illustrated. The great number of windows in the ends of the houses, and their irregularity in size and position, here and elsewhere on the Cape, struck us agreeably, — as if each of the various occupants 152 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU who had their cunabula behind had punched a hole where his necessities required it, and according to his size and stature, without regard to outside effect. There were windows for the grown folks, and windows for the children, — three or four apiece ; as a certain man had a large hole cut in his barn-door for the cat, and another smaller one for the kitten. Some- times they were so low under the eaves that I thought they must have perforated the plate beam for another apartment, and I noticed some which were triangular, to fit that part more exactly. The ends of the houses had thus as many muzzles as a revolver, and, if the inhabitants have the same habit of staring out the windows that some of our neighbours have, a traveller must stand a small chance with them. Generally, the old-fashioned and unpainted houses on the Cape looked more comfortable, as well as picturesque, than the modern and more pretending ones, which were less in hai'mony with the scenery, and less firmly planted. These houses were on the shores of a chain of ponds, seven in number, the source of a small stream called Herring River, which empties into the Ba}^ There are many Herring Rivers on the Cape ; they will, perhaps, be more numerous than herrings soon. We knocked at the door of the first house, but its inhabitants were all gone away. In the meanwhile, we saw the occupants of the next one looking out the window at us, and before we reached it an old woman came out and fastened the door of her bulkhead, and went in again. Nevertheless, we did not hesitate to THE WELLFLEET OYSTEEMAN 153 knock at her door, wken a grizzly-looking man appeared, whom we took to be sixty or seventy years old. He asked us, at first, suspiciously, where we were from, and what our business was ; to which we returned plain answers. " How far is Concord from Boston ? " he inquired. "Twenty miles by railroad." " Twenty miles by railroad," he repeated. "Didn't you ever hear of Concord of Revolu- tionary fame ? " " Didn't I ever hear of Concord ? Why, I heard guns fire at the battle of Bunker Hill. [They hear the sound of heavy cannon across the Bay.] I am almost ninety ; I am eighty-eight year old. I was fourteen year old at the time of Concord Fight, — and where were you then 1 " We were obliged to confess that we were not in the fight. " Well, walk in, we'll leave it to the women," said he. So we walked in, surprised, and sat down, an old woman taking our hats and bundles, and the old man continued, drawing up to the large, old-fashioned fire-place, — "I am a poor, good-for-nothing ciittur, as Isaiah says ; I am all broken down this year. I am under petticoat government here." The family consisted of the old man, his wife, and his daughter, who appeared nearly as old as her mother, a fool, her son (a brutish-looking, middle- aged man, with a prominent lower face, who was 154 SELECTIONS FKOM THOEEA.U standing by the hearth when we entered, but immedi- ately went out), and a little boy of ten. While my companion talked with the women, I talked with the old man. They said that he was old and foolish, but he was evidently too knowing for them. "These women," said he to me, "are both of them poor good-for-nothing critturs. This one is my wife. I married her sixty-four years ago. She is eighty- four years old, and as deaf as an adder, and the other is not much better." He thought well of the Bible, or at least he spoke well, and did not think ill, of it, for that would not have been prudent for a man of his age. He said that he had read it attentively for many years, and he had much of it at his tongue's end. He seemed deeply impressed with a sense of his own nothingness, and would repeatedly exclaim, — • " I am a nothing. What I gather from my Bible is just this ; that man is a poor good-for-nothing crittur, and everything is just as God sees fit and disposes." " May I ask your name % " I said. "Yes," he answered, "I am not ashamed to tell my name. My name is • . My great-grandfather came over from England and settled here." He was an old Wellfleet oysterman, who had acquired a competency in that business, and had sons still engaged in it. Our host told us that the sea-clam, or hen, was not easily obtained ; it was raked up, but never on THE WELLFLEET OYSTEEMAN 155 the Atlantic side, only cast ashore there in small quantities in storms. The fisherman sometimes wades in water several feet deep, and thrusts a pointed stick into the sand before him. When this enters between the valves of a clam, he closes them on it, and is drawn out. It has been known to catch and hold coot and teal which were preying on it. I chanced to be on the bank of the Acushnet at New Bedford one day since this, watching some ducks, when a man informed me that, having let out his young ducks to seek their food amid the samphire (Salicornia) and other weeds along the riverside at low tide that morning, at length he noticed that one remained stationary, amid the weeds, something preventing it from following the others, and going to it he found its foot tightly shut in a quahog's shell. He took up both together, carried them to his home, and his wife opening the shell with a knife released the duck and cooked the quahog. The old man said that the great clams were good to eat, but that they always took out a certain part which was poisonous, before they cooked them. "People said it would kill a cat." I did not tell him that I had eaten a large one entire that afternoon, but began to think that I was tougher than a cat. He stated that pedlers came round there, and sometimes tried to sell the women folks a skimmer, but he told them that their women had got a better skimmer than they could make, in the shell of their clams ; it was shaped jusf right for this purpose.-^They call them " skim-alls " in some places. He also said that the sun-squall 156 SELECTIONS FKOM THOEEAU was poisonous to handle, and when the sailors came across it, they did not meddle with it, but heaved it out of their way. I told him that I had handled it that afternoon, and had felt no ill effects as yet. But he said it made the hands itch, especially if they had previously been scratched, or if I put it into my bosom, I should find out what it was.- At length the fool, whom my companion called the wizard, came in, muttering between his teeth, " Damn book-pedlers, — all the time talking about books. Better do something. Damn 'em. I'll shoot 'em. Got a doctor down here. Damn him, I'll get a gun and shoot him ; " never once holding up his head. Whereat the old man stood up and said in a loud voice, as if he was accustomed to command, and this was not the first time he had been obliged to exert his authority there : "John, go sit down, mind your business, — we've heard you talk before, ^precious little you'll do, — your bark is worse than your bite." But, without minding, John muttered the same gibberish over again, and then sat down at the table which the old folks had left. He ate aU there was on it, and then turned to the apples, which his aged mother was paring, that she might give her guests some apple-sauce for breakfast, but she drew them away and sent him off. When I approached this house the next summer, (jver the desolate hills between it and the shore, which arc worthy to have been the birthplace of Ossian, I saw the wizard in the midst of a cornfield on the hillside, THE WELLFLBET OYSTBEMAN 157 but, as usual, he loomed so strangely, that I mistook him for a scarecrow. This was the merriest old man that we had ever seen, and one of the best preserved. His style of con- versation was coarse and plain enough to have suited Kabelais. He would have made a good Panurge. Or rather he was a sober Silenus, and we were the boys Ohromis and Mnasilus, who listened to his story. " Not by Hsemonian hills the Thraoiaii bard, Nor awful Phcebiis was on Pindus heard With deeper silence or with more regard. " There was a strange mingling of past and present in his conversation, for he had lived under King George, and might have remembered when Napoleon and the moderns generally were born. He said that one day, when the troubles between the Colonies and the mother country first broke out, as he, a boy of fifteen, was pitching hay out of a cart, one Donne, an old Tory, who was talking with his father, a good Whig, said to him, "Why, Uncle Bill, you might as well undertake to pitch that pond into the ocean with a pitchfork, as for the Colonies to undertake to gain their independence." He remembered well General Washington, and how he rode his horse along the streets of Boston, and he stood up to show us how he looked. "He was a r — a — ther large and portly-looking man, a manly and resolute-looking officer, with a pretty good leg as he sat on his horse." — "There, I'll tell you, this was the way with Washington.'' Then he jumped up again, and bowed gracefully to right 158 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU and left, making show as if he were waving his hat. Said he, " That was Washington." He told us many anecdotes of the Revolution, and was much pleased when we told him that we had read the same in history, and that his account agreed with the written. " Oh," he said, " I know, I know ! I was a young fellow of sixteen, with my ears wide open; and a fellow of that age, you know, is pretty wide awake, and likes to know everything that's going on. Oh, I know ! " He told us the story of the wreck of the Franklin which took place there the previous spring; how a boy came to his house early in the morning to know whose boat that was by the shore, for there was a vessel in distress, and he, being an old man, first ate his breakfast, and then walked over to the top of the hill by the shore, and sat down there, having found a comfortable seat, to see the ship wrecked. She was on the bar, only a quarter of a mile from him, and still nearer to the men on the beach, who had got a boat ready, but could render no assistance on account of the breakers, for there was a pretty high sea running. There were the passengers all crowded together in the forward part of the ship, and some were getting out of the cabin windows and were drawn on deck by the others. "I saw the captain get out his boat," said he; " he had one little one ; and then they jumped into it one after another, down as straight as an arrow. I counted them. There were nine. One was a THE WELLFLEBT OYSTEEMAN 159 woman, and she jumped as straight as any of them. Then they shoved off. The sea took them back, one wave went over them, and when they came up there were six still clinging to the boat ; I counted them. The next wave turned the boat bottom upward, and emptied them all out. None of them ever came ashore alive. There were the rest of them all crowded together on the forecastle, the other parts of the ship being under water. They had seen all that happened to the boat. At length a heavy sea separated the forecastle from the rest of the wreck, and set it inside of the worst breaker, and the boat was able to reach them, and it saved all that were left, but one woman." He also told us of the steamer Cambria's getting aground on this shore a few months before we were there, and of her English passengers who roamed over his grounds, and who, he said, thought the pro- spect from the high hill by the shore, "the most delightsome they had ever seen," and also of the pranks which the ladies played with his scoop-net in the ponds. He spoke of these travellers with their purses full of guineas, just as our provincial fathers used to speak of British bloods in the time of King George the Third. Quid loguar ? Why repeat what he told us ? " Aut Scyllam Nisi, quam fama secuta est, Candida sucoinotam latrantibus inguina monstris, DiilioHas vexasse rates, et gurgite in alto Ah ! timidos uautas canibus lacerasse marinis ? " In the course of the evening I began to feel the potency of the clam which I had eaten, and I was 160 SKLEOTIONS FROM THOEEAU obliged to confess to our host that I was no tougher than the cat he told of; but he answered, that he was a plain-spoken man, and he could tell me that it was all imagination. At any rate, it proved an emetic in my case, and I was made quite sick by it for a short time, while he laughed at my expense. I was pleased to read afterward, in Mourt's Belation of the landing of the Pilgrims in Provincetown Harbour, these words : " We found great muscles (the old editor says that they were undoubtedly sea-clams) and very fat and full of sea-pearl ; but we could not eat them, for they made us all sick that did eat, as well sailors as passengers, . . . but they were soon well again." It brought me nearer to the Pilgrims to be thus reminded by a similar experience that I was so like them. Moreover, it was a valuable confirmation of their story, and I am prepared now to believe every word of Mourt's Relation. I was also pleased to find that man and the clam lay still at the same angle to one another. But I did not notice sea-pearl. Like Cleopatra, I must have swallowed it. I have since dug these clams on a flat in the Bay and observed them. They could squirt full ten feet before the wind, as appeared by the marks of the drops on the sand. "Now I am going to ask you a question," said the old man, " and I don't know as you can tell me ; but you are a learned man, and I never had any learning, only what I got by natur." — It was in vain that we reminded him that he could quote Josephus to our confusion. — "I've thought, if I ever met THE WELLFLEET OYSTEEMAN 161 a learned man I should like to ask him this question. Can you tell me how Axy is spelt, and what it means? Axy," says he; "there's a girl over here is named Axy. Now what is it ? What does it mean ? Is it Scripture? I've read my Bible twenty-five years over and over, and I never came across it." " Did you read it twenty-five years for this object?" I asked. " Well, how is it spelt ? Wife, how is it spelt ? " She said, " It is in the Bible ; I've seen it." " Well, how do you spell it ? " " I don't know. A c h, ach, s e h, seh, — Achseh." " Does that spell Axy ? Well, do you know what it means ? " asked he, turning to me. " No," I replied, " I never heard the sound before." "There was a schoolmaster down here once, and they asked him what it meant, and he said it had no more meaning than a bean-pole." I told him that I held the same opinion with the schoolmaster. I had been a schoolmaster myself, and had had strange names to deal with. I also heard of such names as Zoheth, Beriah, Amaziah, Bethuel, and Shearjashub, hereabouts. At length the little boy, who had a seat quite in the chimney-corner, took off his stockings and shoes, warmed his feet, and having had his sore leg freshly salved, went off to bed ; then the fool made bare his knotty-looking feet and legs, and followed him ; and finally the old man exposed his calves also to our gaze. We had never had the good fortune to see an M 162 SELECTIONS FEOM THOREAU old man's legs before, and were surprised to find them fair and plump as an infant's, and we thought that he took a pride in exhibiting them. He then proceeded to make preparations for retiring, dis- coursing meanwhile with Panurgic plainness of speech on the ills to which old humanity is subject. We were a rare haul for him. He could commonly get none but ministers to talk to, though sometimes ten of them at once, and he was glad to meet some of the laity at leisure. The evening was not long enough for him. As I had been sick, the old lady asked if I would not go to bed, — ^it was getting late for old people ; but the old man, who had not yet done his stories, said, " You ain't particular, are you "i " " Oh no," said I, " I am in no hurry. I believe I have weathered the Clam cape.'' " They are good," said he ; "I wish I had some of them now.'' " They never hurt me,'' said the old lady. "But then you took out the part that killed a cat," said I. At last we cut him short in the midst of his stories, which he promised to resume in the morning. Yet, after all, one of the old ladies who came into our room in the night to fasten the fire-board, which rattled, as she went out took the precaution to fasten us in. Old women are by nature more suspicious than old men. However, the winds howled around the house, and made the fire-boards as well as the casements rattle well that night. It was probably a windy night for any locality, but we could not dis- THE WBLLFLBBT OYSTEEMAN 163 tinguish the roar which was proper to the ocean from that which was due to the wind alone. The sounds which the ocean makes must be very significant and interesting to those who live near it. When I was leaving the shore at this place the next summer, and had got a quarter of a mile distant, ascending a hill, I was startled by a sudden, loud sound from the sea, as if a large steamer were letting off steam by the shore, so that I caught my breath and felt my blood run cold for an instant, and I turned about, expecting to see one of the Atlantic steamers thus far out of her course, but there was nothing unusual to be seen. There was a low bank at the entrance of the Hollow, between me and the ocean, and suspecting that I might have risen into another stratum of air in ascending the hill, — which had wafted to me only the ordinary roar of the sea, — I immediately descended again, to see if I lost hearing of it ; but, without regard to my ascending or descending, it died away in a minute or two, and yet there was scarcely any wind all the while. The old man said that this was what they called the " rut," a peculiar roar of the sea before the wind changes, which, however, he could not account for. He thought that he could tell all about the weather from the sounds which the sea made. Old Josselyn, who came to New England in 1638, has it among his weather-signs, that " the resounding of the sea from the shore, and murmuring of the winds in the woods, without apparent wind, showeth wind to follow." 164 SELECTIONS FEOM THOKEAU Being on another part of the coast one night since this, I heard the roar of the surf a mile distant, and the inhabitants said it was a sign that the wind would work round east, and we should have rainy weather. The ocean was heaped up somewhere at the eastward, and this roar was occasioned by its effort to preserve its equilibrium, the wave reaching the shore before the wind. Also the captain of a packet between this country and England told me that he sometimes met with a wave on the Atlantic coming against the wind, perhaps in a calm sea, which indicated that at a distance the wind was blowing from an opposite quarter, but the undulation had travelled faster than it. Sailors teU of "tide- rips" and "ground-swells," which they suppose to have been occasioned by hurricanes and earthquakes, and to have travelled many hundred, and sometimes even two or three thousand miles. Before sunrise the next morning they let us out again, and I ran over to the beach to see the sun come out of the ocean. The old woman of eighty- four winters was already out in the cold morning wind, bare-headed, tripping about like a young girl, and driving up the cow to milk. She got the break- fast with dispatch, and without noise or bustle ; and meanwhile the old man resumed his stories, standing before us, who were sitting, with his back to the chimney, and ejecting his tobacco-juice right and left into the fire behind him, without regard to the various dishes which were there preparing. At breakfast we had eels, buttermilk cake, cold bread. THE WELLFLEET OYSTEEMAN 165 green beans, doughnuts, and tea. The old man talked a steady stream ; and when his wife told him he had better eat his breakfast, he said : "Don't hurry me; I have lived too long to be hurried." I ate of the apple-sauce and the doughnuts, which I thought had sustained the least detriment from the old man's shots, but my companion refused the apple-sauce, and ate of the hot cake and green beans, which had appeared to him to occupy the safest part of the hearth. But on comparing notes afterward, I told him that the buttermilk cake was particularly exposed, and I saw how it suffered repeatedly, and therefore I avoided it ; but he declared that, however that might be, he witnessed that the apple-sauce was seriously injured, and had therefore declined that. After breakfast we looked at his clock, which was out of order, and oUed it with some "hen's grease," for want of sweet oil, for he scarcely could believe that we were not tinkers or pedlers ; meanwhile, he told a story about visions, which had reference to a crack in the clock- case made by frost one night. He was curious to know to what religious sect we belonged. He said that he had been to hear thirteen kinds of preaching in one month, when he was young, but he did not join any of them, — he stuck to his Bible. There was nothing like any of them in his Bible. While I was shaving in the next room, I heard him ask my com- panion to what sect he belonged, to which he answered, — "Oh, I belong to the Universal Brotherhood." "What's that?" he asked, "Sons o' Temperance?" 166 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU Finally, filling our pockets with doughnuts, which he was pleased to find that we called by the same name that he did, and paying for our entertainment, we took our departure; but he followed us out of doors, and made us tell him the names of the vege- tables which he had raised from seeds that came out of the Franklin. They were cabbage, broccoli, and parsley. As I had asked him the names of so many things, he tried me in turn with aU the plants which grew in his garden, both wild and cultivated. It was about half an acre, which he cultivated whoUy him- self. Besides the common garden vegetables, there were yellow-dock, lemon balm, hyssop, Gill-go-over- the-ground, mouse-ear, chick-weed, Eoman wormwood, elecampane, and other plants. As we stood there, I saw a fish-hawk stoop to pick a fish out of his pond. "There," said I, "he has got a fish." " Well," said the old man, who was looking all the while, but could see nothing, "he didn't dive, he just wet his claws." And, sure enough, he did not this time, though it is said that they often do, but he merely stooped low enough to pick him out with his talons ; but as he bore his shining prey over the bushes, it fell to the ground, and we did not see that he recovered it. That is not their practice. Thus, having had another crack with the old man, he standing bareheaded under the eaves, he directed us " athwart the fields," and we took to the beach again for another day, it being now late in the morning. THE WELLFLEET OYSTEEMAN 167 It was but a day or two after this that the safe of the Provincetown Bank was broken open and robbed by two men from the interior, and we learned that our hospitable entertainers did at least transiently harbour the suspicion that we were the N"ATUEAL HISTOEY OF MASSACHUSETTS^ [1842] Books of natural history make the most cheerful winter reading. I read in Audubon with a thrill of delight, when the snow covers the ground, of the magnolia, and the Florida keys, and their warm sea- breezes; of the fence-rail, and the cotton tree, and the migrations of the rice-bird ; of the breaking up of winter in Labrador, and the melting of the snow on the forks of the Missouri ; and owe an accession of health to these reminiscences of luxuriant nature. WitMn tlie circuit of this plodding life, There enter moments of an azure hue, Untarnished fair as is the violet Or anemone, when the spring strews them By some meandering rivulet, which make The hest philosophy untrue that aims ' Reports — on the Fishes, Reptiles, and Birds ; the Herhaeeous Plants and Quad,rupeds ; the Insects injurious to Vegetation ; and the Invertebrate Animals of Massachusetts. Published agreeably to an Order of the Legislature, by the Commissioners on the Zoological and Botanical Survey of the State. NATUKAL HISTORY OF MASSACHUSETTS 169 But to console man for his grievances. I have remembered when the winter came, High in my chamber in the frosty nights, When in the still light of the cheerful moon, On every twig and rail and jutting spout, The icy spears were adding to their length Against the arrows of the coming sun. How in the shimmering noon of summer past Some unrecorded beam slanted across The upland pastures where the Johnswort gi-ew ; Or heard, amid the verdure of my mind, The bee's long smothered hum, on the blue flag Loitering amidst the mead ; or busy rill, Which now through all its course stands still and dumb Its own memorial, — purling at its play Along the slopes, and through the meadows next, Until its youthful sound was hushed at last In the staid current of the lowland stream ; Or seen the furrows shine hut late upturned. And where the fieldfare followed in the rear. When all the fields around lay bound and hoar Beneath a thick integument of snow. So by God's cheap economy made rich To go upon my winter's task again. I am singularly refreshed in winter when I hear of service-berries, poke-weed, juniper. Is not heaven made up of these cheap summer glories ? There is a singular health in those words, Labrador and East Main, which no desponding creed recognises. How much more than Federal are these States. If there were no other vicissitudes than the seasons, our in- terest would never tire. Much more is adoing than Congress wots of. What journal do the persimmon and the buckeye keep, and the sharp-shinned hawk 1 What is transpiring from summer to winter in the Carolinas, and the Great Pine Forest, and the Valley 170 SELECTIONS FROM THOREAU of the Moliawk 1 The merely political aspect of the land is never very cheering ; men are degraded when considered as the members of a political organisation. On this side all lands present only the symptoms of decay. I see but Bunker Hill and Sing-Sing, the District of Columbia and Sullivan's Island, with a few avenues connecting them. But paltry are they all beside one blast of the east or the south wind which blows over them. In society you will not find health, but in nature. Unless our feet at least stood in the midst of nature, all our faces would be pale and livid. Society is always diseased, and the best is the most so. There is no scent in it so wholesome as that of the pines, nor any fragrance so penetrating and restorative as the life-everlasting in high pastures. I would keep some book of natural history always by me as a sort of elixir, the reading of which should restore the tone of the system. To the sick, indeed, nature is sick, but to the well, a fountain of health. To him who contemplates a trait of natural beauty no harm nor disappointment can come. The doctrines of despair, of spiritual or political tyranny or servitude, were never taught by such as shared the serenity of nature. Surely good courage will not flag here on the Atlantic border, as long as we are flanked by the Fur Countries. There is enough in that sound to cheer one under any circumstances. The spruce, the hemlock, and the pine will not countenance despair. Methinks some creeds in vestries and churches do forget the hunter wrapped in furs by the Great Slave NATUKAL HISTORY OF MASSACHUSETTS 171 Lake, and that the Esquimaux sledges are drawn by dogs, and in the twilight of the northern night the hunter does not give over to follow the seal and walrus on the ice. They are of sick and diseased imagina- tions who would toll the world's knell so soon. Can- not these sedentary sects do better than prepare the shrouds and write the epitaphs of those other busy living men's The practical faith of all men belies the preacher's consolation. What is any man's dis- course to me, if I am not sensible of something in it as steady and cheery as the creak of crickets ? In it the woods must be relieved against the sky. Men tire me when I am not constantly greeted and refreshed as by the flux of sparkling streams. Surely joy is the condition of life. Think of the young fry that leap in ponds, the myriads of insects ushered into being on a summer evening, the incessant note of the hyla with which the woods ring in the spring, the nonchalance of the butterfly carrying accident and change painted in a thousand hues upon its wings, or the brook minnow stoutly stemming the current, the lustre of whose scales worn bright by the attrition is reflected upon the bank. We fancy that this din of religion, literature, and philosophy, which is heard in pulpits, lyceums, and parlours, vibrates through the universe, and is as catholic a sound as the creaking of the earth's axle ; but if a man sleep soundly, he will forget it all between sun- set and dawn. It is the three-inch swing of a pen- dulum in a cupboard, which the great pulse of nature vibrates by and through each instant. When we lift 172 SELECTIONS FROM THOREAU our eyelids and open our ears, it disappears with smoke and rattle like the cars on a railroad. When I detect a beauty in any of the recesses of nature, I am reminded, by the serene and retired spirit in which it requires to be contemplated, of the inex- pressible privacy of a life, — how silent and unam- bitious it is. The beauty there is in mosses must be considered from the holiest, quietest nook. What an admirable training is science for the more active war- fare of life. Indeed, the unchallenged bravery, which these studies imply, is far more impressive than the trumpeted valour of the warrior. I am pleased to learn that Thales was up and stirring by night not unfrequently, as his astronomical discoveries prove. Linnaeus, setting out for Lapland, surveys his " comb " and "spare shirt," "leathern breeches "and "gauze cap to keep oif gnats,'' with as much complacency as Bonaparte a park of artillery for the Russian campaign. The quiet bravery of the man is admirable. His eye is to take in fish, flower, and bird, quadruped and biped. Science is always brave, for to know, is to know good ; doubt and danger quail before her eye. What the coward overlooks in his hurry, she calmly scrutinises, breaking ground like a pioneer for the array of arts that follow in her train. But cowardice is unscientific ; for there cannot be a science of ignor- ance. There may be a science of bravery, for that advances ; but a retreat is rarely well conducted ; if it is, then is it an orderly advance in the face of circumstances. But to draw a little nearer to our promised topics. NATUKAL HISTOEY OF MASSACHUSETTS 173 Entomology extends the limits of being in a new direction, so that I walk in nature with a sense of greater space and freedom. It suggests besides, that the universe is not rough-hewn, but perfect in its details. Nature will bear the closest inspection ; she invites us to lay our eye level with the smallest leaf, and take an insect view of its plain. She has no interstices ; every part is full of life. I explore, too, with pleasure, the sources of the myriad sounds which crowd the summer noon, and which seem the very grain and stuff of which eternity is made. Who does not remember the shrill roll-call of the harvest fly? There were ears for these sounds in Greece long ago, as Anacreon's ode will show. " We pronounce thee happy, Cicada, For on the tops of the trees, Drinking a little dew, Like any king thou singest, For thine are they all, Whatever thou seest in the fields, And whatever the woods bear. Thou art the friend of the husbandmen, In no respect injuring any one ; And thou art honoured among men, Sweet prophet of summer. The Muses love thee, And Phcebus himself loves thee, And has given thee a shrill song ; Age does not wrack thee, Thou skilful, earthborn, song-loving, Unsuffering, bloodless one ; Almost thou art like the gods. " In the autumn days, the creaking of crickets is heard at noon over aU the land, and as in summer 174 SELECTIONS EKOM THOREAU they are heard chiefly at nightfall, so then by their incessant chirp they usher in the evening of the year. Nor can all the vanities that vex the world alter one whit the measure that night has chosen. Every pulse- beat is in exact time with the cricket's chant and the tickings of the deathwatch in the wall. Alternate with these if you can. About two hundred and eighty birds either reside permanently in the State, or spend the summer only, or make us a passing visit. Those which spend the winter with us have obtained our warmest sympathy. The nut-hatch and chicadee flitting in company through the dells of the wood, the one harshly scolding at the intruder, the other with a faint lisping note enticing him on ; the jay screaming in the orchard ; the crow cawing in unison with the storm ; the partridge, like a russet link extended over from autumn to spring, preserving unbroken the chain of summers ; the hawk with warrior-like firmness abiding the blasts of winter ; the robin ^ and lark lurking by warm springs in the woods ; the familiar snow-bird culling a few seeds in the garden, or a few crumbs in the yard; and occasionally the shrike, with heedless and unfrozen melody bringing back summer again ; — His steady sails he never furls At any time o' year, And perching now on Winter's curls, He whistles in his ear. ^ A white robin and a white quail have occasionally been seen. It is mentioned in Audubon as remarkable that the nest of a robin should be found on the ground ; but this bird seems to be less particular than most in the choice of a building spot. I have seen NATURAL HlSTOfiY OF MASSACHUSETTS 175 As the spring advances, and the ice is melting in the river, our earliest and straggling visitors make their appearance. Again does the old Teian poet sing, as well for New England as for Greece, in the RETURN OF SPRING " Behold how, Spring appearing, The Graces send forth roses ; Behold, how the wave of the sea Is made smooth hy the calm ; Behold, how the dnck dives ; Behold, how the crane travels ; And Titan shines constantly bright. The shadows of the clouds are moving ; The works of man shine ; The earth puts forth fruits ; The fruit of the olive puts forth. The cup of Bacchus is crowned, Along the leaves, along the branches. The fruit, bending them down, flourishes." The ducks alight at this season in the still water, in company with the gulls, which do not fail to im- prove an east wind to visit our meadows, and swim about by twos and threes, pluming themselves, and diving to peck at the root of the lily, and the cran- berries which the frost has not loosened. The first flock of geese is seen beating to north, in long harrows and waving lines; the gingle of the song-sparrow salutes us from the shrubs and fences ; the plaintive its nest placed under the thatched roof of a deserted barn, and in one instance, where the adjacent country was nearly destitute of trees, together with two of the phcebe, upon the end of a board in the loft of a saw-mill, but a few feet from the saw, which vibrated several inches with the motion of the machinery [Thoreau's note]. 176 SELECTIONS FROM THORBAU note of the lark comes clear and sweet from the meadow ; and the bluebird, like an azure ray, glances past us in our walk. The fish-hawk, too, is occasion- ally seen at this season sailing majestically over the water, and he who has once observed it will not soon forget the majesty of its flight. It sails the air like a ship of the line, worthy to struggle with the elements, falling back from time to time like a ship on its beam ends, and holding its talons up as if ready for the arrows, in the attitude of the national bird. It is a great presence, as of the master of river and forest. Its eye would not quail before the owner of the soil, but make him feel like an intruder on its domains. And then its retreat, sailing so steadily away, is a kind of advance. I have by me one of a pair of ospreys, which have for some years fished in this vicinity, shot by a neighbouring pond, measuring more than two feet in length, and six in the stretch of its wings. Nuttall mentions that "The ancients, par- ticularly Aristotle, pretended that the ospreys taught their young to gaze at the sun, and those who were unable to do so were destroyed. Linnseus even believed, on ancient authority, that one of the feet of this bird had all the toes divided, while the other was partly webbed, so that it could swim with one foot, and grasp a fish with the other." But that educated eye is now dim, and those talons are nerve- less. Its shrill scream seems yet to linger in its throat, and the roar of the sea in its wings. There is the tyranny of Jove in its claws, and his wrath in the erectile feathers of the head and neck. It re- NATURAL HISTOEY OF MASSACHUSETTS 177 minds me of the Argonautic expedition, and would inspire the diillest to take flight over Parnassus. The booming of the bittern, described by Gold- smith and Nuttall, is frequently heard in our fens, in the morning and evening, sounding like a pump, or the chopping of wood in a frosty morning in some distant farm-yard. The manner in which this sound is produced I have not seen anywhere described. On one occasion, the bird has been seen by one of my neighbours to thrust its bill into the water, and suck up as much as it could hold, then raising its head, it pumped it out again with four or five heaves of the neck, throwing it two or three feet, and making the sound each time. At length the summer's eternity is ushered in by the cackle of the flicker among the oaks on the hill- side, and a new dynasty begins with calm security. In May and June the woodland quire is in full tune, and given the immense spaces of hollow air, and this curious human ear, one does not see how the void could be better filled. Each summer sound Is a summer round. As the season advances, and those birds which make us but a passing visit depart, the woods become silent again, and but few feathers ruffle the drowsy air. But the solitary rambler may still find a response and expression for every mood in the depths of the wood. N 178 SELECTIONS FEOM THOREAU Sometimes I hear the veery's ' clarion, Or brazen trump of the impatient jay, And in secluded woods the chicadee Doles out her scanty notes, which sing the praise Of heroes, and set forth the loveliness Of virtue evermore. The phcBbe still sings in harmony with the sultry weather by the brink of the pond, nor are the de- sultory hours of noon in the midst of the village without their minstrel. Upon the lofty elm-tree sprays The vireo rings the changes sweet, During the trivial summer days, Striving to lift our thoughts above the street. With the autumn begins in some measure a new spring. The plover is heard whistling high in the air over the dry pastures, the finches flit from tree to tree, the bobolinks and flickers fly in flocks, and the goldfinch rides on the earliest blast, like a winged hyla peeping amid the rustle of the leaves. The crows, too, begin now to congregate ; you may stand and count them as they fly low and straggling over the landscape, singly or by twos and threes, at in- tervals of half a mile, until a hundred have passed. I have seen it suggested somewhere that the crow ^ This bird, which is so well described by Nuttall, but is apparently unknown by the author of the Report, is one of the most common in the woods in this vicinity, and in Cambridge I have heard the college yard ring with its trill. The boys call it yorrick, from the sound of its querulous and chiding note, as it flits near the traveller through the underwood. The cowbird's egg is occasionally found in its nest, as mentioned by Audubon [Thoreau's note]. NATURAL HISTORY OF MASSACHUSETTS 179 was brought to this country by the white man ; but I shall as soon believe that the white man planted these pines and hemlocks. He is no spaniel to follow our steps ; but rather flits about the clearings like the dusky spirit of the Indian, reminding me oftener of Philip and Powhatan, than of Winthrop and Smith. He is a relic of the dark ages. By just so slight, by just so lasting a tenure does superstition hold the world ever; there is the rook in England, and the crow in New England. Thou dusky spirit of the wood, Bird of an ancient brood, Flitting thy lonely way, A meteor in the summer's day. From wood to wood, from hill to hill, Low over forest, field, and rill, What wouldst thou say ? Why shouldst thou haunt the day ? What makes thy melancholy float ? What bravery inspires thy throat. And bears thee up above the clouds, Over desponding human crowds, Which far below Lay thy haunts low ? The late walker or sailor, in the October evenings, may hear the murmurings of the snipe, circling over the meadows, the most spirit-like sound in nature; and still later in the autumn, when the frosts have tinged the leaves, a solitary loon pays a visit to our retired ponds, where he may lurk undisturbed till the season of moulting is passed, making the woods ring with his wild laughter. This bird, the Great Northern Diver, well deserves its name; for when 180 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU pursued with a boat, it will dive, and swim like a fish under water, for sixty rods or more, as fast as a boat can be paddled, and its pursuer, if he would discover his game again, must put his ear to the surface to hear where it comes up. When it comes to the surface, it throws the water off with one shake of its wings, and calmly swims about until again disturbed. These are the sights and sounds which reach our senses oftenest during the year. But sometimes one hears a quite new note, which has for background other Carolinas and Mexicos than the books describe, and learns that his ornithology has done him no service. It appears from the Beport that there are about forty quadrupeds belonging to the State, and among these one is glad to hear of a few bears, wolves, lynxes, and wildcats. When our river overflows its banks in the spring, the wind from the meadows is laden with a strong scent of musk, and by its freshness advertises me of an unexplored wildness. Those backwoods are not far off then. I am affected by the sight of the cabins of the musk-rat, made of mud and grass, and raised three or four feet along the river, as when I read of the barrows of Asia. The musk-rat is the beaver of the settled States. Their number has even increased within a few years in this vicinity. Among the rivers which empty into the Merrimack, the Concord is known to the boatmen as a dead stream. The Indians are said to have called it Musketaquid, or NATURAL HISTORY OF MASSACHUSETTS 181 Prairie River. Its current being much more sluggish, and its water more muddy than the rest, it abounds more in fish and game of every kind. According to the History of the town, " The fur-trade was here once very important. As early as 1641, a company was formed in the colony, of which Major Willard of Concord was superintendent, and had the exclusive right to trade with the Indians in furs and other articles ; and for this right they were obliged to pay into the public treasury one twentieth of all the furs they obtained." There are trappers in our midst still, as well as on the streams of the far West, who night and morning go the round of their traps, with- out fear of the Indian. One of these takes from one hundred and fifty to two hundred musk-rats in a year, and even thirty-six have been shot by one man in a day. Their fur, which is not nearly as valuable as formerly, is in good condition in the winter and spring only ; and upon the breaking up of the ice, when they are driven out of their holes by the water, the greatest number is shot from boats, either swim- ming or resting on their stools, or slight supports of grass and reeds, by the side of the stream. Though they exhibit considerable cunning at other times, they are easily taken in a trap, which has only to be placed in their holes, or wherever they frequent, without any bait being used, though it is sometimes rubbed with their musk. In the winter the hunter cuts holes in the ice, and shoots them when they come to the surface. Their burrows are usually in the high banks of the river, with the entrance under 182 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU water, and rising within to above the level of high water. Sometimes their nests, composed of dried meadow grass and flags, may be discovered where the bank is low and spongy, by the yielding of the ground under the feet. They have from three to seven or eight young in the spring. Frequently, in the morning or evening, a long ripple is seen in the still water, where a musk-rat is crossing the stream, with only its nose above the surface, and sometimes a green bough in its mouth to build its house with. When it finds itself observed, it will dive and swim five or six rods under water, and at length conceal itself in its hole, or the weeds. It will remain under water for ten minutes at a time, and on one occasion has been seen, when undisturbed, to form an air-bubble under the ice, which contracted and expanded as it breathed at leisure. When it suspects danger on shore, it will stand erect like a squirrel, and survey its neighbourhood for several minutes, without moving. In the fall, if a meadow intervene between their burrows and the stream, they erect cabins of mud and grass, three or four feet high, near its edge. These are not their breeding-places, though young are sometimes found in them in late freshets, but rather their hunting-lodges, to which they resort in the winter with their food, and for shelter. Their food consists chiefly of flags and fresh-water muscles, the shells of the latter being left in large quantities around their lodges in the spring. The Penobscot Indian wears the entire skin of a NATUEAL HISTORY OF MASSACHUSETTS 183 musk-rat, with the legs and tail dangling and the head caught under his girdle, for a pouch, into which he puts his iishing-tackle, and essences to scent his traps with. The bear, wolf, lynx, wildcat, deer, beaver, and marten, have disappeared ; the otter is rarely if ever seen here at present ; and the mink is less common than formerly. Perhaps of all our untamed quadrupeds, the fox tas obtained the widest and most familiar reputation, from the time of Pilpay and ^sop to the present day. His recent tracks still give variety to a winter's walk. I tread in the steps of the fox that has gone before me by some hours, or which perhaps I have started, with such a tiptoe of expectation, as if I were on the trail of the Spirit itself which resides in the wood, and expected soon to catch it in its lair. I am curious to know what has determined its graceful curvatures, and how surely they were coincident with the fluctuations of some mind. I know which way a mind wended, what horizon it faced, by the setting of these tracks, and whether it moved slowly or rapidly, by their greater or less intervals and distinctness; for the swiftest step leaves yet a lasting trace. Sometimes you will see the trails of many together, and where they have gambolled and gone through a hundred evolutions, which testify to a singular listlessness and leisure in nature. When I see a fox run across the pond on the snow, with the carelessness of freedom, or at intervals trace his course in the sunshine along the ridge of a hill, I 184 SELECTIONS FROM THOEBAU give up to him sun and earth as to their true pro- prietor. He does not go in the sun, but it seems to follow him, and there is a visible sympathy between him and it. Sometimes, when the snow lies light, and but five or six inches deep, you may give chase and come up with one on foot. In such a case he will show a remarkable presence of mind, choosing only the safest direction, though he may lose ground by it. Notwithstanding his fright, he will take no step which is not beautiful. His pace is a sort of leopard canter, as if he were in nowise impeded by the snow, but were husbanding his strength all the while. When the ground is uneven, the course is a series of graceful curves, conforming to the shape of the surface. He runs as though there were not a bone in his back. Occasionally dropping his muzzle to the ground for a rod or two, and then tossing his head aloft, when satisfied of his course. When he comes to a declivity, he will put his forefeet together, and slide swiftly down it, shoving the snow before him. He treads so softly that you would hardly hear it from any nearness, and yet with such expres- sion that it would not be quite inaudible at any distance. Of fishes, seventy-five genera and one hundred and seven species are described in the Repmt. The fisherman will be startled to learn that there are but about a dozen kinds in the ponds and streams of any inland town ; and almost nothing is known of their habits. Only their names and residence make one NATaEAL HISTOKY OF MASSACHUSETTS 185 love fishes. I would know even the number of their fin-rays, and how many scales compose the lateral line. I am the wiser in respect to all knowledges, and the better qualified for all fortunes, for knowing that there is a minnow in the brook. Methinks I have need even of his sympathy, and to be his fellow in a degree. I have experienced such simple delight in the trivial matters of fishing and sporting, formerly, as might have inspired the muse of Homer or Shakespeare ; and now, when I turn the pages and ponder the plates of the Angler's Souvenir, I am fain to exclaim, — ' ' Can these things be, And overcome us like a summer's cloud ? " Next to nature, it seems as if man's actions were the most natural, they so gently accord with her. The small seines of flax stretched across the shallow and transparent parts of our river, are no more in- trusion than the cobweb in the sun. I stay my boat in midcurrent, and look down in the sunny water to see the civil meshes of his nets, and wonder how the blustering people of the town could have done this elvish work. The twine looks like a new river weed, and is to the river as a beautiful memento of man's presence in nature, discovered as silently and delicately as a footprint in the sand. When the ice is covered with snow, I do not suspect the wealth under my feet ; that there is as good as a mine under me wherever I go. How many pickerel are poised on easy fin fathoms below the loaded wain. 186 SELECTIONS FEOM THOEEAU The revolution of the seasons must be a curious phenomenon to them. At length the sun and wind brush aside their curtain, and they see the heavens again. Early in the spring, after the ice has melted, is the time for spearing fish. Suddenly the wind shifts from north-east and east to west and south, and every icicle, which has tinkled on the meadow grass so long, trickles down its stem, and seeks its level un- erringly with a million comrades. The steam curls up from every roof and fence. I see tlie civil sun drying eartt's tears, Her tears of joy, whicli only faster flow. In the brooks is heard the slight grating sound of small cakes of ice, floating with various speed, full of content and promise, and where the water gurgles under a natural bridge, you may hear these hasty rafts hold conversation in an undertone. Every riU is a channel for the juices of the meadow. In the ponds the ice cracks with a merry and inspiriting din, and down the larger streams is whirled grating hoarsely, and crashing its way along, which was so lately a highway for the woodman's team and the fox, sometimes with the tracks of the skaters still fresh upon it, and the holes cut for pickerel. Town committees anxiously inspect the bridges and cause- ways, as if by mere eye-force to intercede with the ice, and save the treasury. The river swolleth more and more, Like some sweet influence stealing o'er The passive town ; and for a while NATUKAL mSTOKY OF MASSACHUSETTS 187 Each tussuok makes a tiny isle, Where, on some friendly Ararat, Resteth the weary water-rat. No ripple shows Musketaquid, Her very current e'en is hid, As deepest souls do calmest rest. When thoughts are swelling in the breast, And she that in the summer's drought Doth make a rippUng and a rout, Sleeps from Nahshawtuok to the Cliff, UnrufSed by a single skiff. But by a thousand distant hills The louder roar a thousand rills, And many a spring which now is dumb, And many a stream with smothered hum. Doth swifter well and faster glide. Though buried deep beneath the tide. Our village shows a rural Venice, Its brood lagoons where yonder fen is ; As lovely as the Bay of Naples Yon placid cove amid the maples ; And in my neighbour's field of corn I recognise the Golden Horn. Here Nature taught from year to year. When only red men came to hear, Methinks 'twas in this school of art Venice and Naples learned their part ; But still their mistress, to my mind, Her young disciples leaves behind. The fisherman now repairs and launches his boat. The best time for spearing is at this season, before the weeds have begun to grow, and while the fishes lie in the shallow water, for in summer they prefer the cool depths, and in the autumn they are still more or less concealed by the grass. The first requisite is 188 SELECTIONS FEOM THOEEAU fuel for your crate ; and for this purpose the roots of the pitch-pine are commonly used, found under decayed stumps, where the trees have been felled eight or ten years. With a crate, or jack, made of iron hoops, to contain your fire, and attached to the bow of your boat about three feet from the water, a fish-spear with seven tines, and fourteen feet long, a large basket, or barrow, to carry your fuel and bring back your fish, and a thick outer garment, you are equipped for a cruise. It should be a warm and still evening ; and then with a fire crackling merrily at the prow, you may launch forth like a cucullo into the night. The dullest soul cannot go upon such an expedition without some of the spirit of adventure ; as if he had stolen the boat of Charon and gone down the Styx on a midnight expedition into the realms of Pluto. And much speculation does this wandering star afibrd to the musing nightwalker, leading him on and on, jack-o'lantern-like, over the meadows ; or, if he is wiser, he amuses himself with imagining what of human life, far in the silent night, is flitting mothlike round its candle. The silent navigator shoves his craft gently over the water, with a smothered pride and sense of benefaction, as if he were the phosphor, or light-bringer, to these dusky realms, or some sister moon, blessing the spaces with her light. The waters, for a rod or two on either hand and several feet in depth, are lit up with more than noonday distinctness, and he enjoys the opportunity which so many have desired, for the roofs of a city are indeed raised, and NATDEAL HISTORY OF MASSACHUSETTS 189 he surveys the midnight economy of the fishes. There they lie in every variety of posture ; some on their back, with their white bellies uppermost, some sus- pended in midwater, some sculling gently along with a dreamy motion of the fins, and others quite active and wide-awake, — a scene not unlike what the human city would present. Occasionally he will encounter a turtle selecting the choicest morsels, or a musk-rat resting on a tussuck. He may exercise his dexterity, if he sees fit, on the more distant and active fish, or fork the nearer into his boat, as potatoes out of a pot, or even take the sound sleepers with his hands. But these last accomplishments he will soon learn to dispense with, distinguishing the real object of his pursuit, and find compensation in the beauty and never-ending novelty of his position. The pines growing down to the water's edge will show newly as in the glare of a conflagration ; and as he floats under the willows with his light, the song-sparrow will often wake on her perch, and sing that strain at midnight, which she had meditated for the morning. And when he has done, he may have to steer his way home through the dark by the north star, and he will feel himself some degrees nearer to it for having lost his way on the earth. The fishes commonly taken in this way are pickerel, suckers, perch, eels, pouts, breams, and shiners, — from thirty to sixty weight in a night. Some are hard to be recognised in the unnatural light, especially the perch, which, his dark bands being exaggerated, acquires a ferocious aspect. The number of these 190 SELECTIONS FROM THOKEAU transverse bands, which the Report states to be seven, is, however, very variable, for in some of our ponds they have nine and ten even. It appears that we have eight kinds of tortoises, twelve snakes, — but one of which is venomous, — nine frogs and toads, nine salamanders, and one lizard, for our neighbours. I am particularly attracted by the motions of the serpent tribe. They make our hands and feet, the wings of the bird, and the fins of the fish seem very superfluous, as if nature had only indulged her fancy in making them. The black snake will dart into a bush when pursued, and circle round and round with an easy and graceful motion, amid the thin and bare twigs, five or six feet from the ground, as a bird fiits from bough to bough, or hang in festoons between the forks. Elasticity and flesdbleness in the simpler forms of animal life are equivalent to a complex system of limbs in the higher ; and we have only to be as wise and wUy as the serpent, to perform as difficult feats without the vulgar assistance of hands and feet. In May, the snapping tm:\l&,Emysau'msserpentina,\s, frequently taken on the meadows and in the river. The fisherman, taking sight over the calm surface, discovers its snout projecting above the water, at the distance of many rods, and easily secures his prey through its unwillingness to disturb the water by swimming hastily away, for, gradually drawing its head under, it remains resting on some limb or clump NATURAL HISTORY OF MASSACHUSETTS 191 of grass. Its eggs, which are buried at a distance from the water, in some soft place, as a pigeon-bed, are frequently devoured by the skunk. It will catch fish by daylight, as a toad catches flies, and is said to emit a transparent fluid from its mouth to attract them. Nature has taken more care than the fondest parent for the education and refinement of her children. Consider the silent influence which flowers exert, no less upon the ditcher in the meadow than the lady in the bower. When I walk in the woods, I am reminded that a wise purveyor has been there before me ; my most delicate experience is typified there. I am struck with the pleasing friendships and unanimities of nature, as when the lichen on the trees takes the form of their leaves. In the most stupendous scenes you will see delicate and fragile features, as slight wreaths of vapour, dewlines, feathery sprays, which suggest a high refinement, a noble blood and breeding, as it were. It is not hard to account for elves and fairies ; they represent this light grace, this ethereal gentility. Bring a spray from the wood, or a crystal from the brook, and place it on your mantel, and your household orna- ments will seem plebeian beside its nobler fashion and bearing. It will wave superior there, as if used to a more refined and polished circle. It has a salute and a response to all your enthusiasm and heroism. In the winter, I stop short in the path to admire how the trees grow up without forethought, regardless of the time and circumstances. They do not wait as man does, but now is the golden age of the sapling. 192 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU Earth, air, sun, and rain, are occasion enough ; they were no better in primeval centuries. The " winter of their discontent " never comes. Witness the buds of the native poplar standing gayly out to the frost on the sides of its bare switches. They express a naked confidence. With cheerful heart one could be a sojourner in the wilderness, if he were sure to find there the catkins of the willow or the alder. When I read of them in the accounts of northern adven- turers, by Baffin's Bay or Mackenzie's river, I see how even there too I could dwell. They are our little vegetable redeemers. Methinks our virtue will hold out till they come again. They are worthy to have had a greater than Minerva or Ceres for their inventor. Who was the benignant goddess that bestowed them on mankind 1 Nature is mythical and mystical always, and works with the licence and extravagance of genius. She has her luxurious and florid style as well as art. Having a pilgrim's cup to make, she gives to the whole, stem, bowl, handle, and nose, some fantastic shape, as if it were to be the car of some fabulous marine deity, a Nereus or Triton. In the winter, the botanist needs not confine him- self to his books and herbarium, and give over his out-door pursuits, but may study a new department of vegetable physiology, what may be called crystal- line botany, then. The winter of 1837 was unusu- ally favourable for this. In December of that year, the Genius of vegetation seemed to hover by night over its summer haunts with unusual persistency. NATUEAL HISTORY OF MASSACHUSETTS 193 Such a hoar-frost, as is very uncommon here or any- where, and whose full effects can never be witnessed after sunrise, occurred several times. As I went forth early on a still and frosty morning, the trees looked like airy creatures of darkness caught napping ; on this side huddled together with their gray hairs streaming in a secluded valley, which the sun had not penetrated ; on that hurrying off in Indian file along some watercourse, while the shrubs and grasses, like elves and fairies of the night, sought to hide their diminished heads in the snow. The river, viewed from the high bank, appeared of a yellowish green colour, though all the landscape was white. Every tree, shrub, and spire of grass, that could raise its head above the snow, was covered with a dense ice- foliage, answering, as it were, leaf for leaf to its summer dress. Even the fences had put forth leaves in the night. The centre, diverging, and more minute fibres were perfectly distinct, and the edges regularly indented. These leaves were on the side of the twig or stubble opposite to the sun, meeting it for the most part at right angles, and there were others standing out at all possible angles upon these and upon one another, with no twig or stubble supporting them. When the first rays of the sun slanted over the scene, the grasses seemed hung with innumerable jewels, which jingle^ merrily as they were brushed by the foot of the traveller, and reflected all the hues of the rainbow as he moved from side to side. It struck me that these ghost leaves, and the green ones whose forms they assume, were the creatures of but 194 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU one law; that in obedience to the same law the vegetable juices swell gradually into the perfect leaf, on the one hand, and the crystalline particles troop to their standard in the same order, on the other. As if the material were indifferent, but the law one and invariable, and every plant in the spring but pushed up into and filled a permanent and eternal mould, which, summer and winter for ever, is waiting to be filled. This foliate structure is common to the coral and the plumage of birds, and to how large a part of animate and inanimate nature. The same independ- ence of law on matter is observable in many other instances, as in the natural rhymes, when some animal form, colour, or odour, has its counterpart in some vegetable. As, indeed, all rhymes imply an eternal melody, independent of any particular sense. As confirmation of the fact, that vegetation is but a kind of crystallisation, every one may observe how, upon the edge of the melting frost on the window, the needle-shaped particles are bundled together so as to resemble fields waving \vith grain, or shocks rising here and there from the stubble; on one side the vegetation of the torrid zone, high-towering palms and wide-spread banyans, such as are seen in pictures of oriental scenery ; on the other, arctic pines stiff frozen, with downcast branches. Vegetation has been made the type of all growth ; but as in crystals the law is more obvious, their- material being more simple, and for the most part NATURAL HISTORY OF MASSACHUSETTS 195 more transient and fleeting, would it not be as philo- sophical as convenient to consider all growth, all filling up within the limits of nature, but a crystallisa- tion more or less rapid 1 On this occasion, in the side of the high bank of the river, wherever the water or other cause had formed a cavity, its throat and outer edge, like the entrance to a citadel, bristled with a glistening ice- armour. In one place you might see minute ostrich- feathers, which seemed the waving plumes of the warriors filing into the fortress ; in another, the glancing, fan-shaped banners of the Lilliputian host ; and in another, the needle-shaped particles collected into bundles, resembling the plumes of the pine, might pass for a phalanx of spears. From the under side of the ice in the brooks, where there was a thicker ice below, depended a mass of crystallisation, four or five inches deep, in the form of prisms, with their lower ends open, which, when the ice was laid on its smooth side, resembled the roofs and steeples of a Gothic city, or the vessels of a crowded haven under a press of canvas. The very mud in the road, where the ice had melted, was crystallised with deep recti- linear fissures, and the crystalline masses in the sides of the ruts resembled exactly asbestos in the disposi- tion of their needles. Around the roots of the stubble and flower-stalks, the frost was gathered into the form of irregular conical shells, or fairy rings. In some places the ice-crystals were lying upon granite rocks, directly over crystals of quartz, the frost-work of a longer night, crystals of a longer period, but to 196 SELECTIONS FEOM THOEEAU some eye unprejudiced by the short term of human life, melting as fast as the former. In the Report on the Invertebrate Animals, this singular fact is recorded, which teaches us to put a new value on time and space. "The distribution of the marine shells is well worthy of notice as a geologi- cal fact. Cape Cod, the right arm of the Common- wealth, reaches out into the ocean, some fifty or sixty miles. It is nowhere many miles wide; but this narrow point of land has hitherto proved a barrier to the migrations of many species of MoUusca. Several genera and numerous species, which are separated by the intervention of only a few miles of land, are effectually prevented from mingling by the Cape, and do not pass from one side to the other. , ... Of the one hundred and ninety-seven marine species, eighty-three do not pass to the south shore, and fifty are not found on the north shore of the Cape." That common muscle, the Unio complanatus, or more properly fluviatilis, left in the spring by the musk-rat upon rocks and stumps, appears to have been an important article of food with the Indians. In one place, where they are said to have feasted, they are found in large quantities, at an elevation of thirty feet above the river, iilling the soil to the depth of a foot, and mingled with ashes and Indian remains. The works we have placed at the head of our chapter, with as much license as the preacher selects his text, are such as imply more labour than enthusiasm. NATUKAL HISTORY OF MASSACHUSETTS 197 The State wanted complete catalogues of its natural riches, with such additional facts merely as would be directly useful. The reports on Fishes, Keptiles, Insects, and In- vertebrate Animals, however, indicate labour and re- search, and have a value independent of the object of the legislature. Those on Herbaceous Plants and Birds cannot be of much value, as long as Bigelow and Nuttall are accessible. They serve but to indicate, with more or less exactness, what species are found in the State. We detect several errors ourselves, and a more prac- tised eye would no doubt expand the list. The Quadrupeds deserved a more final and in- structive report than they have obtained. These volumes deal much in measurements and minute descriptions, not interesting to the general reader, with only here and there a coloured sentence to allure him, like those plants growing in dark forests, which bear only leaves without blossoms. But the ground was comparatively unbroken, and we will not complain of the pioneer, if he raises no flowers with his first crop. Let us not underrate the value of a fact ; it will one day flower in a truth. It is astonish- ing how few facts of importance are added in a century to the natural history of any animal. The natural history of man himself is still being gradually written. Men are knowing enough after their fashion. Every countryman and dairymaid knows that the coats of the fourth stomach of the calf will curdle milk, and what particular mushroom is a safe and 198 SELECTIONS FEOM THOREAU nutritious diet. You cannot go into any field or wood, but it will seem as if every stone had been turned, and the bark on every tree ripped up. But, after all, it is much easier to discover than to see when the cover is off. It has been well said that " the attitude of inspection is prone." Wisdom does not inspect, but behold. We must look a long time before we can see. Slow are the beginnings of philo- sophy. He has something demoniacal in him, who can discern a law or couple two facts. We can imagine a time when, — " Water runs dovm hill," — may have been taught in the schools. The true man of science will know nature better by his finer organisa- tion ; he will smell, taste, see, hear, feel, better than other men. His will be a deeper and finer experience. We do not learn by inference and deduction, and the application of mathematics to philosophy, but by direct intercourse and sympathy. It is with science as with ethics, — we cannot know truth by contrivance and method ; the Baconian is as false as any other, and with all the helps of machinery and the arts, the most scientific will still be the healthiest and friend- liest man, and possess a more perfect Indian wisdom. WALKING [1862] I WISH to speak a word for Nature, for absolute freedom and wildness, as contrasted with a freedom and culture merely civil, — to regard man as an in- habitant, or a part and parcel of Nature, rather than a member of society. I wish to make an extreme statement, if so I may make an emphatic one, for there are enough champions of civilisation : the minister and the school-committee, and every one of you will take care of that. I have met with but one or two persons in the course of my life who understood the art of Walking, that is, of taldng walks, — who had a genius, so to speak, for sauntering: which word is beautifully derived "from idle people who roved about the country, in the Middle Ages, and asked charity, under pretence of going A la Sainte Terre," to the Holy Land, till the children exclaimed, "There goes a Sainte- Terr er," a Saunterer, — a Holy-Lander. They who never go to the Holy Land in their walks, as 'W"^ 200 SELECTIONS FEOM THOEBAU they pretend, are indeed mere idlers and vagabonds ; but they who do go there are saunterers in the good sense, such as I mean. Some, however, would derive the word from sans terre, without land or a home, which, therefore, in the good sense, will mean, having no particular home, but equally at home everywhere. For this is the secret of successful sauntering. He who sits still in a house all the time may be the greatest vagrant of all ; but the saunterer, in the good sense, is no more vagrant than the meandering river, which is all the while sedulously seeking the shortest course to the sea. But I prefer the first, which, indeed, is the most probable derivation. For every walk is a sort of crusade, preached by some Peter the Hermit in us, to go forth and reconquer this Holy Land from the hands of the Infidels. It is true, we are but faint-hearted crusaders, even the walkers, nowadays, who undertake no persevering, never-ending enterprises. Our expeditions are but tours, and come round again at evening to the old hearth-side from which we set out. Half the walk is but retracing our steps. We should go forth on the shortest walk, perchance, in the spirit of undying adventure, never to return, — prepared to send back our embalmed hearts only as relics to our desolate kingdoms. If you are ready to leave father and mother, and brother and sister, and wife and child and friends, and never see them again, — if you have paid your debts, and made your will, and settled all your affairs, and are a free man, then you are ready for a walk. WALKING 201 To come down to my own experience, my companion and I, for I sometimes have a companion, take pleasure in fancying ourselves knights of a new, or rather an old, order, — not Equestrians or Chevaliers, not Eitters or riders, but Walkers, a still more ancient and honourable class, I trust. The chivalric and heroic spirit which once belonged to the Eider seems now to reside in, or perchance to have subsided into, the Walker, — not the Knight, but Walker Errant. He is a sort of fourth estate, outside of Church and State and People. We have felt that we almost alone hereabouts practised this noble art ; though, to tell the truth, at least, if their own assertions are to be received, most of my townsmen would fain walk sometimes, as I do, but they cannot. No wealth can buy the requisite leisure, freedom, and independence, which are the capital in this profession. It comes only by the grace of God. It requires a direct dispensation from Heaven to become a walker. You must be born into the family of the Walkers. Ambulator nascitur, non fit. Some of my townsmen, it is true, can remember and have described to me some walks which they took ten years ago, in which they were so blessed as to lose themselves for half an hour in the woods ; but I know very well that they have confined themselves to the highway ever since, whatever pretensions they may make to belong to this select class. No doubt they were elevated for a moment as by the remin- iscence of a previous state of existence, when even they were foresters and outlaws. 202 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAXJ ' ' When he came to grene wode, In a mery mornynge, There he herde the notes small Of byrdes mery syngynge. " It is feiTe gone, sayd Robyn, That I was last here ; Me lyste a lytell for to shote At the donne dere." I think that I cannot preserve my health and spirits, unless I spend four hours a day at least, — and it is commonly more than that, — sauntering through the woods and over the hills and fields, absolutely free from all worldly engagements. You may safely say, A penny for your thoughts or a thousand pounds. When sometimes I am reminded that the mechanics and shopkeepers stay in their shops not only all the forenoon, but all the afternoon too, sitting with crossed legs so many of them, — as if the legs were made to sit upon, and not to stand or walk upon, — I think that they deserve some credit for not having all com- mitted suicide long ago. I, who cannot stay in my chamber for a single day without acquiring some rust, and when sometimes I have stolen forth for a walk at the eleventh hour of four o'clock in the afternoon, too late to redeem the day, when the shades of night were already be- ginning to be mingled with the daylight, have felt as if I had committed some sin to be atoned for, — I confess that I am astonished at the power of endurance, to say nothing of the moral insensibility, of my neighbours who confine themselves to shops and offices the whole day for weeks and months, ay, and years WALKING 203 almost together. I know not what manner of stuff they are of, — sitting there now at three o'clock in the afternoon, as if it were three o'clock in the morning. Bonaparte may talk of the three-o'clock-in-the-morning courage, but it is nothing to the courage which can sit down cheerfully at this hour in the afternoon over against one's self whom you have known all the morning, to starve out a garrison to whom you are bound by such strong ties of sympathy. I wonder that about this time, or say between four and five o'clock in the afternoon, too late for the morning papers and too early for the evening ones, there is not a general explosion heard up and down the street, scattering a legion of antiquated and house -bred notions and whims to the four winds for an airing, — and so the evil cure itself. How womankind, who are confined to the house still more than men, stand it I do not know ; but I have ground to suspect that most of them do not staiid it at all. When, early in a summer afternoon, we have been shaking the dust of the village from the skirts of our garments, making haste past those houses with purely Doric or Gothic fronts, which have such an air of repose about them, my companion whispers that probably about these times their occu- pants are all gone to bed. Then it is that I appreciate the beauty and the glory of architecture, which itself never tiu'ns in, but for ever stands out and erect, keeping watch over the slumberers. No doubt temperament, and, above all, age, have a good deal to do with it. As a man grows older. 204 SELECTIONS FKOM THOEEAU his ability to sit still and follow indoor occupations increases. He grows vespertinal in his habits as the evening of life approaches, till at last he comes forth only just before sundown, and gets all the walk that he requires in half an hour. But the walking of which I speak has nothing in it akin to taking exercise, as it is called, as the sick take medicine at stated hours, — as the swinging of dumb-bells or chairs ; but is itself the enterprise and adventure of the day. If you would get exercise, go in search of the springs of life. Think of a man's swinging dumb-bells for his health, when those springs are bubbling up in far-off pastures unsought by him ! Moreover, you must walk like a camel, which is said to be the only beast which ruminates when walking. When a traveller asked Wordsworth's servant to show him her master's study, she answered, " Here is his library, but his study is out of doors." Living much out of doors, in the sun and wind, will no doubt produce a certain roughness of character, — will cause a thicker cuticle to grow over some of the finer qualities of our nature, as on the face and hands, or as severe manual labour robs the hands of some of their delicacy of touch. So staying in the house, on the other hand, may produce a softness and smoothness, not to say thinness of skin, accompanied by an increased sensibility to certain impressions. Perhaps we should be more susceptible to some influences important to our intellectual and moral growth, if the sun had shone and the wind blown on us a little less ; and no doubt it is a nice matter to WALKING 205 proportion rightly the thick and thin skin. But methinks that is a scurf that will fall off fast enough, — that the natural remedy is to be found in the proportion which the night bears to the day, the winter to the summer, thought to experience. There will be so much the more air and sunshine in our thoughts. The callous palms of the labourer are con- versant with finer tissues of self-respect and heroism, whose touch thrills the heart, than the languid fingers of idleness. That is mere sentimentality that lies abed by day and thinks itself white, far from the tan and callus of experience. When we walk, we naturally go to the fields and woods : what would become of us, if we walked only in a garden or a mall 1 Even some sects of philo- sophers have felt the necessity of importing the woods to themselves, since they did not go to the woods. "They planted groves and walks of Platanes," where they took subdiales ambulationes in porticoes open to the air. Of course it is of no use to direct our steps to the woods, if they do not carry us thither. I am alarmed when it happens that I have walked a mile into the woods bodily, without getting there in spirit. In my afternoon walk I would fain forget all my morning occupations and my obligations to society. But it sometimes happens that I cannot easily shake off the village. The thought of some work will run in my head and I am not where my body is, —I am out of my senses. In my walks I would fain return to my senses. What business have I in the woods, if 1 am thinking of something out of the 206 SELECTIONS FEOM THOREAU woods 1 I suspect myself, and cannot help a shudder, when I find myself so implicated even in what are called good works, — for this may sometimes happen. My vicinity affords many good walks ; and though for so many years I have walked almost every day, and sometimes for several days together, I have not yet exhausted them. An absolutely new prospect is a great happiness, and I can still get this any after- noon. Two or three hours' walking will carry me to as strange a country as I expect ever to see. A single farmhouse which I had not seen before is some- times as good as the dominions of the King of Dahomey. There is in fact a sort of harmony dis- coverable between the capabilities of the landscape within a circle of ten miles' radius, or the limits of an afternoon walk, and the threescore years and ten of human life. It will never become quite familiar to you. Nowadays almost all man's improvements, so called, as the building of houses, and the cutting down of the forest and of all large trees, simply deform the landscape, and make it more and more tame and cheap. A people who would begin by burning the fences and let the forest stand ! I saw the fences half consumed, their ends lost in the middle of the prairie, and some worldly miser with a surveyor look- ing after his bounds, while heaven had taken place around him, and he did not see the angels going to and fro, but was looking for an old post-hole in the midst of paradise. I looked again, and saw him standing in the middle of a boggy, stygian fen, WALKING 207 surrounded by devils, and he had found his bounds without a doubt, three httle stones, where a stake had been driven, and looking nearer, I saw that the Prince of Darkness was his surveyor. I can easily walk ten, fifteen, twenty, any number of miles, commencing at my own door, without going by any house, without crossing a road except where the fox and the mink do : first along by the river, and then the brook, and then the meadow and the wood-side. There are square miles in my vicinity which have no inhabitant. From many a hill I can see civilisation and the abodes of man afar. The farmers and their works are scarcely more obvious than woodchucks and their burrows. Man and his affairs, church and state and school, trade and com- merce, and manufactures and agriculture, even politics, the most alarming of them all, — I am pleased to see how little space they occupy in the landscape. Politics is but a narrow field, and that still narrower highway yonder leads to it. I sometimes direct the traveller thither. If you would go to the political world, follow the great road, — follow that market-man, keep his dust in your eyes, and it will lead you straight to it ; for it, too, has its place merely, and does not occupy all space. I pass from it as from a bean-field into the forest, and it is forgotten. In one half-hour I can walk off to some portion of the earth's surface where a man does not stand from one year's end to another, and there, consequently, politics are not, for they are but as the cigar-smoke of a man. 208 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU At present, in this vicinity, the best part of the land is not private property; the landscape is not owned, and the walker enjoys comparative freedom. But possibly the day will come when it will be parti- tioned off into so-called pleasure-grounds, in which a few will take a narrow and exclusive pleasure only, — when fences shall be multiplied, and man-traps and other engines invented to confine men to the public road, and walking over the surface of God's earth shall be construed to mean trespassing on some gentle- man's grounds. To enjoy a thing exclusively is commonly to exclude yourself from the true enjoy- ment of it. Let us improve our opportunities, then, before the evil days come. What is it that makes it so hard sometimes to determine whither we will walk 1 I believe that there is a subtile magnetism in Nature, which, if we un- consciously yield to it, will direct us aright. It is not indifferent to us which way we walk. There is a right way ; but we are very liable from heedlessness and stupidity to take the wrong one. We would fain take that walk, never yet taken by us through this actual world, which is perfectly symbolical of the path which we love to travel in the interior and ideal world ; and sometimes, no doubt, we find it difiicult to choose our direction, because it does not yet exist distinctly in our idea. When I go out of the house for a walk, uncertain as yet whither I will bend my steps, and submit myself to my instinct to decide for me, I find, strange WALKING 209 and whimsical as it may seem, that I finally and inevitably settle south-west, toward some particular wood or meadow or deserted pasture or hill in that direction. My needle is slow to settle, — varies a few degrees, and does not always point due south-west, it is true, and it has good authority for this variation, hut it always settles between west and south-south- west. The future lies that way to me, and the earth seems more unexhausted and richer on that side. The outline which would bound my walks would be, not a circle, but a parabola, or rather like one of those cometary orbits which have been thought to be non- returning curves, in this case opening westward, in which my house occupies the place of the sun. I turn round and round irresolute sometimes for a quarter of an hour, until I decide, for a thousandth time, that I will walk into the south-west or west. Eastward I go only by force ; but westward I go free. Thither no business leads me. It is hard for me to believe that I shall find fair landscapes or suflS.cient wildness and freedom behind the eastern horizon. I am not excited by the prospect of a walk thither ; but I believe that the forest which I see in the western horizon stretches uninterruptedly toward the setting sun, and there are no towns nor cities in it of enough consequence to disturb me. Let me live where I will, on this side is the city, on that the wilderness, and ever I am leaving the city more and more, and withdrawing into the wilderness. I should not lay so much stress on this fact, if I did not believe that something like this is the prevailing tendency of my 210 SELECTIONS FROM THOEBATJ countrymen. I must walk toward Oregon, and not toward Europe. And that way the nation is moving, and I may say that mankind progress from east to west. Within a few years we have witnessed the phenomenon of a south-eastward migration, in the settlement of Australia ; but this affects us as a retro- grade movement, and, judging from the moral and physical character of the first generation of Australians, has not yet proved a successful experiment. The eastern Tartars think that there is nothing west beyond Thibet. " The world ends there," say they, "beyond there is nothing but a shoreless sea." It is unmitigated East where they live. We go eastward to realise history and study the works of art and literature, retracing the steps of the race ; we go westward as into the future, with a spirit of enterprise and adventure. The Atlantic is a Lethean stream, in our passage over which we have had an opportunity to forget the Old World and its institutions. If we do not succeed this time, there is perhaps one more chance for the race left before it arrives on the banks of the Styx ; and that is in the Lethe of the Pacific, which is three times as wide. I know not how significant it is, or how far it is an evidence of singularity, that an individual should thus consent in his pettiest walk with the general movement of the race ; but I know that something akin to the migratory instinct in birds and quadrupeds, — which, in some instances, is known to have affected the squirrel tribe, impelling them to a general and mysterious movement, in which they were seen, say WALKING 211 somBj crossing the broadest rivers, each on its par- ticular chip, with its tail raised for a sail, and bridging narrower streams with their dead,- — that something like the fwror which aflFects the domestic cattle in the spring, and which is referred to a worm in their tails, — affects both nations and individuals, either perennially or from time to time. Not a flock of wild geese cackles over our town, but it to some extent unsettles the value of real estate here, and, if I were a broker, I should probably take that disturb- ance into account. " Than longen folk to gon on pilgrimages, And palmeres for to seken sti-ange strondes." Every sunset which I witness inspires me with the desire to go to a West as distant and as fair as that into which the sun goes down. He appears to migrate westward daily, and tempt us to follow him. He is the Great Western Pioneer whom the nations follow. We dream all night of those mountain-ridges in the horizon, though they may be of vapour only, which were last gilded by his rays. The island of Atlantis, and the islands and gardens of the Hesperides, a sort of terrestrial paradise, appear to have been the Great West of the ancients, enveloped in mystery and poetry. Who has not seen in imagination, when looking into the sunset sky, the gardens of the Hesperides, and the foundation of all those fables? Columbus felt the westward tendency more strongly than any before. He obeyed it, and found a New 212 SELECTIONS FROM THOEBAU World for Castile and Leon. The herd of men in those days scented fresh pastures from afar. " And now the sun had stretched out all the hlUs, And now was dropped into the western bay ; At last he rose, and twitched his mantle blue ; To-morrow to fresh woods and pastures new." Where on the globe can there be found an area of equal extent with that occupied by the bulk of our States, so fertile and so rich and varied in its produc- tions, and at the same time so habitable by the European, as this is ? Michaux, who knew but part of them, says that "the species of large trees are much more numerous in North America than in Europe ; in the United States there are more than one hundred and forty species that exceed thirty feet in height; in France there are but thirty that attain this size." Later botanists more than confirm his observations. Humboldt came to America to realise his youthful dreams of a tropical vegetation, and he beheld it in its greatest perfection in the primitive forests of the Amazon, the most gigantic wilderness on the earth, which he has so eloquently described. The geographer Guyot, himself a European, goes further, — further than I am ready to foUow him ; yet not when he says, — "As the plant is made for the animal, as the vegetable world is made for the animal world, America is made for the man of the Old World. . . . The man of the Old World sets out upon his way. Leaving the highlands of Asia, he descends from station to station towards Europe. Each of his steps is marked by a new civilisation superior to WALKING 213 the preceding, by a greater power of development. Arrived at the Atlantic, he pauses on the shore of this unknown ocean, the bounds of which he knows not, and turns upon his footprints for an instant." "When he has exhausted the rich soil of Europe, and reinvigorated himself, " then recommences his adven- turous career westward as in the earliest ages.'' So far Guyot. From this western impulse coming in contact with the barrier of the Atlantic sprang the commerce and enterprise of modern times. The younger Michaux, in his Travels West of the AUeghanies in 1802, says that the common inquiry in the newly settled West was, " ' From what part of the world have you come"!' As if these vast and fertile regions would naturally be the place of meeting and common country of all the inhabitants of the globe." To use an obsolete Latin word, I might say, Ex Oriente Iwx, ; ex Occidente FRUX. From the East light ; from the West fruit. The West of which I speak is but another name for the Wild; and what I have been preparing to say is, that in Wildness is the preservation of the World. Every tree sends its fibres forth in search of the Wild. The cities import it at any price. Men plough and sail for it. From the forest and wilder- ness come the tonics and barks which brace mankind. Our ancestors were savages. The story of Eomulus and Remus being suckled by a wolf is not a meaning- less fable. The founders of every State which has 214 SELECTIONS FEOM THOREAU risen to eminence have drawn their nourishment and vigour from a similar wild source. It was because the children of the Empire were not suckled by the wolf that they were conquered and displaced by the children of the Northern forests who were. I believe in the forest, and in the meadow, and in the night in which the corn grows. We require an infusion of hemlock-spruce or arbor-vitse in our tea. There is a difference between eating and drinking for strength and from mere gluttony. The Hottentots eagerly devour the marrow of the koodoo and other ante- lopes raw, as a matter of course. Some of our Northern Indians eat raw the marrow of the Arctic reindeer, as well as various other parts, including the summits of the antlers, as long as they are soft. And herein, perchance, they have stolen a march on the cooks of Paris. They get what usually goes to feed the fire. This is probably better than stall-fed beef and slaughter-house pork to make a man of. Give me a wildness whose glance no civilisation can endure, — as if we lived on the marrow of koodoos devoured raw. There are some intervals which border the strain of the wood-thrush, to which I would migrate, — wild lands where no settler has squatted; to which, methinks, I am already acclimated. The African hunter Cummings tells us that the skin of the eland, as well as that of most other ante- lopes just killed, emits the most delicious perfume of trees and grass. I would have every man so much like a wild antelope, so much a part and parcel of WALKING 215 Nature, that his very person should thus sweetly advertise our senses of his presence, and remind us of those parts of Nature which he most haunts. I feel no disposition to be satirical, when the trapper's coat emits the odour of musquash even ; it is a sweeter scent to me than that which commonly exhales from the merchant's or the scholar's garments. When I go into their wardrobes and handle their vestments, I am reminded of no grassy plains and flowery meads which they have frequented, but of dusty merchants' exchanges and libraries rather. A tanned skin is something more than respectable, and perhaps olive is a fitter colour than white for a man, — a denizen of the woods. "The pale white man ! " I do not wonder that the African pitied him. Darwin the naturalist says, "A white man bathing by the side of a Tahitian was like a plant bleached by the gardener's art, compared with a fine, dark green one, growing vigorously in the open fields." Ben Jonson exclaims, — • " How near to good is what is fair!" So I would say, — How near to good is what is wild ! Life consists with wildness. The most alive is the wildest. Not yet subdued to man, its presence re- freshes him. One who pressed forward incessantly and never rested from his labours, who grew fast and made infinite demands on life, would always find himself in a new country or wilderness, and surrounded 216 SELECTIONS FEOM THOEEATJ by the raw material of life. He would be climbing over the prostrate stems of primitive forest-trees. Hope and the future for me are not in lawns and cultivated fields, not in towns and cities, but in the impervious and quaking swamps. When, formerly, I have analysed my partiality for some farm which I had contemplated purchasing, I have frequently found that I was attracted solely by a few square rods of impermeable and unfathomable bog, — a natural sink in one corner of it. That was the jewel which dazzled me. I derive more of my subsistence from the swamps which surround my native town than from the cultivated gardens in the village. There are no richer parterres to my eyes than the dense beds of dwarf andromeda (Cassandra calyculata) which cover these tender places on the earth's surface. Botany cannot go further than tell me the names of the shrubs which grow there, — the high -blueberry, panicled andromeda, lamb-kiU, azalea, and rhodora, — all standing in the quaking sphagnum. I often think that I should like to have my house front on this mass of dull red bushes, omitting other flower plots and borders, transplanted spruce and trim box, even gravelled walks, — to have this fertile spot under my windows, not a few imported barrow-fuUs of soil only to cover the sand which was thrown out in digging the cellar. Why not put my house, my parlour, behind this plot, instead of behind that meagre assemblage of curiosities, that poor apology for a Nature and Art, which I call my front-yard ? It is an effort to clear up and make a decent appearance WALKING 217 when the carpenter and mason have departed, though done as much for the passer-by as the dweller within. The most tasteful front -yard fence was never an agreeable object of study to me ; the most elaborate ornaments, acorn -tops, or what not, soon wearied and disgusted me. Bring your sills up to the very edge of the swamp, then (though it may not be the best place for a dry cellar), so that there be no access on that side to citizens. Front-yards are not made to walk in, but, at most, through, and you could go in the back way. Yes, though, you may think me perverse, if it were proposed to me to dwell in the neighbourhood of the most beautiful garden that ever human art contrived, or else of a dismal swamp, I should cer- tainly decide for the swamp. How vain, then, have been all your labours, citizens, for me ! My spirits infallibly rise in proportion to the outward dreariness. Give me the ocean, the desert or the wilderness ! In the desert, pure air and solitude compensate for want of moisture and fertility. The traveller Burton says of it, — " Your morale improves ; you become frank and cordial, hospitable and single- minded. ... In the desert, spirituous liquors excite only disgust. There is a keen enjoyment in a mere animal existence." They who have been travelling long on the steppes of Tartary say, — " On reentering cultivated lands, the agitation, perplexity, and turmoil of civilisation oppressed and suffocated us ; the air seemed to fail us, and we felt every moment as if about to die of asphyxia." When I would recreate 218 SELECTIONS FEOM THOEEATJ myself, I seek the darkest wood, the thickest and most interminable, and, to the citizen, most dismal swamp. I enter a swamp as a sacred place, — a sandwn sa/nctorum. There is the strength, the marrow of Nature. The wild -wood covers the virgin mould, — and the same soil is good for men and for trees. A man's health requires as many acres of meadow to his prospect as his farm does loads of muck. There are the strong meats on which he feeds. A town is saved, not more by the righteous men in it than by the woods and swamps that surround it. A township where one primitive forest waves above while another primitive forest rots below, — such a town is fitted to raise not only corn and potatoes, but poets and philosophers for the coming ages. In such a soil grew Homer and Confucius and the rest, and out of such a wilderness comes the Reformer eating locusts and wild honey. To preserve wild animals implies generally the creation of a forest for them to dwell in or resort to. So it is with man. A hundred years ago they sold bark in our streets peeled from our own woods. In the very aspect of those primitive and rugged trees, there was, methinks, a tanning principle which hardened and consolidated the fibres of men's thoughts. Ah ! already I shudder for these comparatively de- generate days of my native village, when you cannot collect a load of bark of good thickness, — and we no longer produce tar and turpentine. The civilised nations — Greece, Rome, England — have been sustained by the primitive forests which anciently rotted where they stand. They survive ■WALKING 219 as long as the soil is not exhausted. Alas for human culture ! little is to be expected of a nation, when the vegetable mould is exhausted, and it is compelled to make manure of the bones of its fathers. There the poet sustains himself merely by his own superfluous fat, and the philosopher comes down on his marrow- bones. It is said to be the task of the American " to work the virgin soil," and that " agriculture here already assumes proportions unknown everywhere else.'' I think that the farmer displaces the Indian even be- cause he redeems the meadow, and so makes himself stronger and in some respects more natural. I was surveying for a man the other day a single straight line one hundred and thirty-two rods long, through a swamp, at whose entrance might have been written the words which Dante read over the entrance to the infernal regions, — "Leave all hope, ye that enter," — that is, of ever getting out again ; where at one time I saw my employer actually up to his neck and swimming for his life in his property, though it was still winter. He had another similar swamp which I could not survey at all, because it was completely under water, and nevertheless, with regard to a third swamp, which I did survey from a distance, he re- marked to me, true to his instincts, that he would not part with it for any consideration, on account of the mud which it contained. And that man intends to put a girdling ditch round the whole in the course of forty months, and so redeem it by the magic of his spade. I refer to him only as the type of a class. 220 SELECTIONS FEOM THOEEAU The weapons with which we have gained our most important victories, which should be handed down as heirlooms from father to son are not the sword and the lance, but the bush-whack, the turf- cutter, the spade, and the bog-hoe, rusted with the blood of many a meadow, and begrimed with the dust of many a hard-fought field. The very winds blew the Indian's corn-field into the meadow, and pointed out the way which he had not the skill to follow. He had no better implement with which to intrench himself in the land than a clam-sheU. But the farmer is armed with plough and spade. In Literature it is only the wild that attracts us. Dulness is but another name for tameness. It is the uncivilised free and wild thinking in Hamlet and the Iliad, in all the Scriptures and Mythologies, not learned in the schools, that delights us. As the wild duck is more swift and beautiful than the tame, so is the wild — the mallard — thought, which 'mid falling dews wings its way above the fens. A truly good book is something as natural, and as un- expectedly and unaccountably fair and perfect, as a wild flower discovered on the prairies of the West or in the jungles of the East. Genius is a light which makes the darkness visible, like the lightning's flash, which perchance shatters the temple of knowledge itself, — and not a taper lighted at the hearth-stone of the race, which pales before the light of common day. English literature, from the days of the minstrels to the Lake Poets, — Chaucer and Spenser and Milton, and even Shakespeare, included — breathes no quite WALKING 221 fresh and in this sense wild strain. It is an essentially tame and civilised literature, reflecting Greece and Eome. Her wilderness is a green wood, — her wild man a Eobin Hood. There is plenty of genial love of Nature, but not so much of Nature herself. Her chronicles inform us when her wild animals, but not when the wild man in her, became extinct. The science of Humboldt is one thing, poetry is another thing. The poet to-day, notwithstanding all the discoveries of science, and the accumulated learning of mankind, enjoys no advantage over Homer. Where is the literature which gives expression to Nature 1 He would be a poet who could impress the winds and streams into his service, to speak for him ; who nailed words to their primitive senses, as farmers drive down stakes in the spring, which the frost has heaved ; who derived his words as often as he used them, — transplanted them to his page with earth adhering to their roots; whose words were so true and fresh and natural that they would appear to expand like the buds at the approach of spring, though they lay half-smothered between two musty leaves in a library, — ay, to bloom and bear fruit there, after their kind, annually, for the faithful reader, in sym- pathy with surrounding Nature. I do not know of any poetry to quote which adequately expresses this yearning for the Wild. Approached from this side, the best poetry is tame. I do not know where to find in any literature, ancient or modern, any account which contents me of that Nature with which even I am acquainted. You will 222 SELECTIONS FKOM THOEEAU perceive that I demand sometliing whicli no Augustan nor Elizabethan age, which no culture, in short, can give. Mythology comes nearer to it than anything. How much more fertile a Nature, at least, has Grecian mythology its root in than English literature ! Mythology is the crop which the Old World bore before its soil was exhausted, before the fancy and imagination were affected with blight ; and which it still bears, wherever its pristine vigour is unabated. All other literatures endure only as the elms which overshadow our houses ; but this is like the great dragon-tree of the Western Isles, as old as mankind, and, whether that does or not, will endure as long ; for the decay of other literatures makes the soil in which it thrives. The West is preparing to add its fables to those of the East. The valleys of the Ganges, the NUe, and the Rhine, having yielded their crop, it remains to be seen what the valleys of the Amazon, the Plate, the Orinoco, the St. Lawrence, and the Mississippi will produce. Perchance, when, in the course of ages, American liberty has become a fiction of the past, — as it is to some extent a fiction of the present, — the poets of the world will be inspired by American mythology. The wildest dreams of wild men, even, are not the less true, though they may not recommend them- selves to the sense which is most common among Englishmen and Americans to-day. It is not every truth that recommends itself to the common sense. Nature has a place for the wild clematis as well as WALKING 223 for the cabbage. Some expressions of truth are reminiscent, — others raerely sensible, as the phrase is, — others prophetic. Some forms of disease, even, may prophesy forms of health. The geologist has discovered that the figures of serpents, griffins, flying dragons, and other fanciful embellishments of heraldry, have their prototypes in the forms of fossil species which were extinct before man was created, and hence "indicate a faint and shadowy knowledge of a previous state of organic existence.'' The Hindoos dreamed that the earth rested on an elephant, and the elephant on a tortoise, and the tortoise on a serpent; and though it may be an unimportant coincidence, it will not be out of place here to state, that a fossil tortoise has lately been discovered in Asia large enough to support an elephant. I confess that I am partial to these wild fancies, which transcend the order of time and development. They are the sublimest recreation of the intellect. The partridge loves peas, but not those that go with her into the pot. In short, all good things are wild and free. There is something in a strain of music, whether produced by an instrument or by the human voice, — take the sound of a bugle in a summer night, for instance,- — which by its wildness, to speak without satire, reminds me of the cries emitted by wild beasts in their native forests. It is so much of their wildness as I can understand. Give me for my friends and neighbours wild men, not tame ones. The wildness of the savage is but a faint symbol of the awful ferity with which good men and lovers meet. 224 SELECTIONS FEOM THOEEAU I love even to see the domestic animals reassert their native rights, — any evidence that they have not wholly lost their original wild habits and vigour ; as when my neighbour's cow breaks out of her pasture early in the spring and boldly swims the river, a cold, gray tide, twenty-five or thirty rods wide, swollen by the melted snow. It is the buffalo crossing the Mississippi. This exploit confers some dignity on the herd in my eyes, — already dignified. The seeds of instinct are preserved under the thick hides of cattle and horses, like seeds in the bowels of the earth, an indefinite period. Any sportiveness in cattle is unexpected. I saw one day a herd of a dozen bullocks and cows running about and frisking in unwieldy sport, like huge rats, even like kittens. They shook their heads, raised their tails, and rushed up and down a hill, and I perceived by their horns, as well as by their activity, their relation to the deer tribe. But, alas ! a sudden loud TFJioa ! would have damped their ardour at once, reduced them from venison to beef, and stiffened their sides and sinews like the locomotive. Who but the Evil One has cried, " Whoa ! " to mankind ? Indeed, the life of cattle, like that of many men, is but a sort of locomotiveness ; they move a side at a time, and man, by his machinery, is meeting the horse and the ox half-way. Whatever part the whip has touched is thenceforth palsied. Who would ever think of a sids of any of the supple cat tribe, as we speak of a side of beef % I rejoice that horses and steers have to be broken WALKING 225 before they can be made tbe slaves of men, and that men themselves have some wild oats still left to sow before they become submissive members of society. Undoubtedly, all men are not equally fit subjects for civilisation ; and because the majority, like dogs and sheep, are tame by inherited disposition, this is no reason why the others should have their natures broken that they may be reduced to the same level. Men are in the main alike, but they were made several in order that they might be various. If a low use is to be served, one man will do nearly or quite as well as another ; if a high one, individual excellence is to be regarded. Any man can stop a hole to keep the wind away, but no other man could serve so rare a use as the author of this illustration did. Confucius says, — " The skins of the tiger and the leopard, when they are tanned, are as the skins of the dog and the sheep tanned." But it is not the part of a true culture to tame tigers, any more than it is to make sheep ferocious ; and tanning their skins for shoes is not the best use to which they can be put. When looking over a list of men's names in a foreign language, as of military officers, or of authors who have written on a particular subject, I am re- minded once more that there is nothing in a name. The name MenschikofF, for instance, has nothing in it to my ears more human than a whisker, and it may belong to a rat. As the names of the Poles and Russians are to us, so are ours to them. It is as if they had been named by the child's rigmarole, — lery Q 226 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU wiery ichery van, tittle-tol-tan. I see in my mind a herd of wild creatures swarming over the earth and to each the herdsman has affixed some barbarous sound in his own dialect. The names of men are of course as cheap and meaningless as Bose and Tray, the names of dogs. Methinksit would be some advantage to philosophy, if men were named merely in the gross, as they are known. It would be necessary only to know the genus and perhaps the race or variety, to know the individual. We are not prepared to believe that every private soldier in a Eoman army had a name of his own, — because we have not supposed that he had a character of his own. At present our only true names are nicknames. I knew a boy who, from his peculiar energy, was called "Buster" by his playmates, and this rightly supplanted his Chris- tian name. Some travellers tell us that an Indian had no name given him at first, but earned it, and his name was his fame ; and among some tribes he acquired a new name with every new exploit. It is pitiful when a man bears a name for convenience merely, who has earned neither name nor fame. I will not allow mere names to make distinctions for me, but still see men in herds for all them. A familiar name cannot make a man less strange to me. It may be given to a savage who retains in secret his own wild title earned in the woods. We have a wild savage in us and a savage name is perchance some- where recorded as* ours. I see that my neighbour, who bears the familiar epithet William, or Edwin, WALKING 227 takes it off with his jacket. It does not adhere to him when asleep or in anger, or arouse(J by any passion or inspiration. I seem to hear pronounced by some of his kin at such a time his original wild name in some jaw-breaking or else melodious tongue. Here is this vast, savage, howling mother of ours. Nature, lying all around, with such beauty, and such affection for her children, as the leopard ; and yet we are so early weaned from her breast to society, to that culture which is exclusively an interaction of man on man, — a sort of breeding in and in, which produces at most a merely English nobility, a civilisa- tion destined to have a speedy limit. In society, in the best institutions of men, it is easy to detect a certain precocity. When we should still be growing children, we are already little men. Give me a culture which imports much muck from the meadows, and deepens the soil, — not that which trusts to heating manures, and improved implements and modes of culture only ! Many a poor sore-eyed student that I have heard of would grow faster, both intellectually and physic- ally, if, instead of sitting up so very late, he honestly slumbered a fool's allowance. There may be an excess even of informing light. Niepce, a Frenchman, discovered "actinism," that power in the sun's rays which produces a chemical effect, — that granite rocks, and stone structures, and statues of metal, "are all alike destructively acted upon during the hours of sunshine, and, but for pro- 228 SELECTIONS FKOM THOKEAU visions of Nature no less wonderful, would soon perish under the delicate touch of the most subtile of the agencies of the universe." But he observed that "those bodies which underwent this change during the daylight possessed the power of restoring them- selves to their original conditions during the hours of night, when this excitement was no longer influencing them." Hence it has been inferred that " the hours of darkness are as necessary to the inorganic creation as we know night and sleep are to the organic king- dom." Not even does the moon shine every night, but gives place to darkness. I would not have every man nor every part of a man cultivated, any more than I would have every acre of earth cultivated : part will be tiUage, but the greater part will be meadow and forest, not only serv- ing an immediate use, but preparing a mould against a distant future, by the annual decay of the vegeta- tion which it supports. There are other letters for the child to learn than those which Cadmus invented. The Spaniards have a good term to express this wild and dusky know- ledge, — Gramdtica parda, tawny grammar, — a kind of mother-wit derived from that same leopard to which I have referred. We have heard of a Society for the Diffusion of Useful Knowledge. It is said that knowledge is power ; and the like. Methinks there is equal need of a Society for the Diffusion of Useful Ignorance, what we will call Beautiful Knowledge, a knowledge useful in a higher sense : for what is most of our WALKING 229 boasted so-called knowledge but a conceit ttat we know something, which robs us of the advantage of our actual ignorance ? What we call knowledge is often our positive ignorance ; ignorance our negative knowledge. By long years of patient industry and reading of the newspapers, — for what are the libraries of science but files of newspapers 'i — a man accumu- lates a myriad facts, lays them up in his memory, and then when in some spring of his life he saunters abroad into the Great Fields of thought, he, as it were, goes to grass like a horse and leaves all his harness behind in the stable. I would say to the Society for the Diffusion of Useful Knowledge, sometimes, — Go to grass. You have eaten hay long enough. The spring has come with its green crop. The very cows are driven to their country pastures before the end of May ; though I have heard of one unnatural farmer who kept his cow in the barn and fed her on hay all the year round. So, frequently, the Society for the Diffasion of Useful Knowledge treats its cattle. A man's ignorance sometimes is not only useful, but beautiful, — while his knowledge, so called, is oftentimes worse than useless, besides being ugly. Which is the best man to deal with, — he who knows nothing about a subject, and, what is extremely rare, knows that he knows nothing, or he who really knows something about it, but thinks that he knows all. My desire for knowledge is intermittent ; but my desire to bathe my head in atmospheres unknown to my feet is perennial and constant. The highest that we can attain to is not Knowledge, but Sympathy 230 SELECTIONS FEOM THOEEAU with Intelligence. I do not know that this higher knowledge amounts to anything more definite than a novel and grand surprise on a sudden revelation of the insufficiency of all that we caUed Knowledge before, — a discovery that there are more things in heaven and earth than are dreamed of in our philo- sophy. It is the lighting up of the mist by the sun. Man cannot know in any higher sense than this, any more than he can look serenely and with impunity in the face of sun : 'O9 t\ voSiV ov KeZvov vorjaei'i, — " You will not perceive that, as perceiving a particular thing," say the Chaldean Oracles. There is something servile in the habit of seeking after a law which we may obey. We may study the laws of matter at and for our convenience, but a suc- cessful life knows no law. It is an unfortunate dis- covery certainly, that of a law which binds us where we did not know before that we were bound. Live free, child of the mist, — and with respect to know- ledge we are all children of the mist. The man who takes the liberty to live is superior to all the laws, by virtue of his relation to the law -maker. " That is active duty," says the Vishnu Purana, "which is not for our bondage ; that is knowledge which is for our liberation : all other duty is good only unto weariness ; all other knowledge is only the cleverness of an artist." It is remarkable how few events or crises there are in our histories; how little exercised we have been in our minds; how few experiences we have had. I would fain be assured that I am growing WALKING 231 apace and rankly, though my very growth disturb this dull equanimity, — though it be with struggle through long, dark muggy nights or seasons of gloom. It would be well, if all our lives were a divine tragedy even, instead of this trivial comedy or farce. Dante, Bunyan, and others, appear to have been exercised in their minds more than we : they were subjected to a kind of culture such as our district schools and colleges do not contemplate. Even Mahomet, though many may scream at his name, had a good deal more to live for, ay, and to die for, than they have commonly. When, at rare intervals, some thought visits one, as perchance he is walking on a railroad, then indeed the cars go by without his hearing them. But soon, by some inexorable law, our life goes by and the cars return. " Gentle breeze, that wanderest unseen, And bendest the thistles round Loira of storms, Traveller of the windy glens, Why hast thou left my ear so soon ? " While almost all men feel an attraction drawing them to society, few are attracted strongly to Nature. In their relation to Nature men appear to me for the most part, notwithstanding their arts, lower than the animals. It is not often a beautiful relation, as in the case of the animals. How little appreciation of the beauty of the landscape there is among us ! We have to be told that the Greeks called the world Kotr/(,o9, Beauty, or Order, but we do not see clearly why they did so, and we esteem it at best only a curious philological fact. 232 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU For my part, I feel that with regard to Nature I live a sort of border life, on the confines of a world into which I make occasional and transitional and tran- sient forays only, and my patriotism and allegiance to the State into whose territories I seem to retreat are those of a moss-trooper. Unto a life which I call natural I would gladly follow even a will-o'-the-wisp through bogs and sloughs unimaginable, but no moon nor fire-fly has shown me the causeway to it. Nature is a personality so vast and universal that we have never seen one of her features. The walker in the familiar fields which stretch around my native town sometimes finds himself in another land than is de- scribed in their owners' deeds, as it were in some far- away field on the confines of the actual Concord, where her jurisdiction ceases, and the idea which the word Concord suggests ceases to be suggested. These farms which I have myself surveyed, these bounds which I have set up, appear dimly still as through a mist ; but they have no chemistry to fix them ; they fade from the surface of the glass ; and the picture which the painter painted stands out dimly from beneath. The world with which we are commonly acquainted leaves no trace, and it will have no anniversary. I took a walk on Spaulding's Farm the other after- noon. I saw the setting sun lighting up the opposite side of a stately pine wood. Its golden rays straggled into the aisles of the wood as into some noble hall. I was impressed as if some ancient and altogether admirable and shining family had settled there in WALKING 233 that part of the land called Concord, unknown to me, — to whom the sun was servant, — who had not gone into society in the village, — who had not been called on. I saw their park, their pleasure-ground, beyond through the wood, in Spaulding's cranberry-meadow. The pines furnished them with gables as they grew. Their house was not obvious to vision ; the trees grew through it. I do not know whether I heard the sounds of a suppressed hilarity or not. They seemed to recline on the sunbeams. They have sons and daughters. They are quite well. The farmer's cart- path, which leads directly through their hall, does not in the least put them out, — as the muddy bottom of a pool is sometimes seen through the reflected skies. They never heard of Spaulding, and do not know that he is their neighbour, — notwithstanding I heard him whistle as he drove his team through the house. Nothing can equal the serenity of their lives. Their coat of arms is simply a lichen. I saw it painted on the pines and oaks. Their attics were in the tops of the trees. They are of no politics. There was no noise of labour. I did hot perceive that they were weaving or spinning. Yet I did detect, when the wind lulled and hearing was done away, the finest imaginable sweet musical hum, — as of a distant hive in May, which perchance was the sound of their thinking. They had no idle thoughts, and no one without could see their work, for their industry was not as in knots and excrescences embayed. But I find it difficult to remember them. They fade irrevocably out of my mind even now while I 234 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU speak and endeavour to recall them, and recollect myself. It is only after a long and serious effort to recollect my best thoughts that I become again aware of their cohabitancy. If it were not for such families as this, I think I should move out of Concord. We are accustomed to say in New England that few and fewer pigeons visit us every year. Our forests furnish no mast for them. So, it would seem, few and fewer thoughts visit each growing man from year to year, for the grove in our minds is laid waste, — sold to feed unnecessary fires of ambition, or sent to mill, and there is scarcely a twig left for them to perch on. They no longer build nor breed with us. In some more genial season, perchance, a faint shadow flits across the landscape of the mind, cast by the tilings of some thought in its vernal or autumnal migra- tion, but, looking up, we are unable to detect the substance of the thought itself. Our winged thoughts are turned to poultry. They no longer soar, and they attain only to a Shanghai and Cochin-China grandeur. Those gra-a-ate thoughts, those gra-a-ate men you hear of ! We hug the earth, — how rarely we mount ! Me- thinks we might elevate ourselves a little more. We might climb a tree, at least. I found my account in climbing a tree once. It was a tall white pine, on the top of a hill ; and though I got well pitched, I was well paid for it, for I discovered new mountains in the horizon which I had never seen before, — so much more of the earth and the heavens. I might have WALKING 235 walked about the foot of the tree for threescore years and ten, and yet I certainly should never have seen them. But, above all, I discovered around me, — it was near the end of June, — on the ends of the topmost branches only, a few minute and delicate red cone-like blossoms, the fertile flower of the white pine looking heavenward. I carried straightway to the village the topmost spire, and showed it to stranger jurymen who walked the streets, — for it was court-week, — and to farmers and lumber-dealers and wood-choppers and hunters, and not one had ever seen the like before, but they wondered as at a star dropped down. Tell of ancient architects finishing their works on the tops of columns as perfectly as on the lower and more visible parts ! Nature has from the first expanded the minute blossoms of the forest only toward the heavens, above men's heads and unobserved by them. We see only the flowers that are under our feet in the meadows. The pines have developed their delicate blossoms on the highest twigs of the wood every summer for ages, as well over the heads of Nature's red children as of her white ones ; yet scarcely a farmer or hunter in the land has ever seen them. Above all, we cannot afford not to live in the present. He is blessed over all mortals who loses no moment of the passing life in remembering the past. Unless our philosophy hears the cock crow in every barnyard within our horizon, it is belated. That sound commonly reminds us that we are growing rusty and antique in our employments and habits of 236 SELECTIONS FROM THOREAU thought. His philosophy comes down to a more recent time than ours. There is something suggested by it that is a newer testament, — the gospel according to this moment. He has not fallen astern ; he has got up early and kept up early and to be where he is to be in season, in the foremost rank of time. It is an expression of the health and soundness of Nature, a brag for all the world, — healthiness as of a spring burst forth, a new fountain of the Muses, to celebrate this last instant of time. Where he lives no fugitive slave laws are passed. Who has not betrayed his master many times since last he heard that note 1 The merit of this bird's strain is in its freedom from all plaintiveness. The singer can easily move us to tears or to laughter, but where is he who can excite in us a pure morning joy ? When, in doleful dumps, breaking the awful stillness of our wooden sidewalk on a Sunday, or, perchance, a watcher in the house of mourning, I hear a cockerel crow far or near, I think to myself, " There is one of us well, at any rate," — and with a sudden gush return to my senses. We had a remarkable sunset one day last November. I was walking in a meadow, the source of a small brook, when the sun at last, just before setting, after a cold gray day, reached a clear stratum in the horizon, and the softest, brightest morning sunlight fell on the dry grass and on the stems of the trees in the opposite horizon and on the leaves of the shrub-oaks on the hill-side, while our shadows stretched long over the meadow eastward, as if we are the only motes in its WALKING 237 beams. It was such a light as we could not have imagined a moment before, and the air also was so warm and serene that nothing was wanting to make a paradise of that meadow. When we reflected that this was not a solitary phenomenon, never to happen again, but that it would happen for ever and ever an infinite number of evenings, and cheer and reassure the latest child that walked there, it was more glorious still. The sun sets on some retired meadow, where no house is visible, with all the glory and splendour that it lavishes on cities, and perchance, as it has never set before, — where there is but a solitary marsh- hawk to have his wings gilded by it, or only a mus- quash looks out from his cabin, and there is some little black-veined brook in the midst of the marsh, just beginning to meander, winding slowly round a decay- ing stump. We walked in so pure and bright a light, gilding the withered grass and leaves, so softly and serenely bright, I thought I had never bathed in such a golden flood, without a ripple or a murmur to it. The west side of every wood and rising ground gleamed like the boundary of Elysium, and the sun on our backs seemed like a gentle herdsman driving us home at evening. So we saunter toward the Holy Land, till one day the sun shall shine more brightly than ever he has done, shall perchance shine into our minds and hearts, and light up our whole lives with a great awakening light, as warm and serene and golden as on a bank- side in autumn. CIVIL DISOBEDIENCE I HEARTILY accept the motto, — "That government is best which governs least " ; and I should like to see it acted up to more rapidly and systematically. Carried out, it finally amounts to this, which also I believe, — "That government is best which governs not at all " ; and when men are prepared for it, that will be the kind of government which they will have. Government is at best but an expedient ; but most governments are usually, and all governments are sometimes, inexpedient. The objections which have been brought against a standing army, and they are many and weighty, and deserve to prevail, may also at last be brought against a standing government. The standing army is only an arm of the standing government. "^ The government itself, which is only the mode which the people have chosen to execute their will, is equally liable to be abused and perverted before the people can act through it." Witness the present Mexican war, the work of comparatively a few individuals using the standing government as their tool ; for, in the outset, the people would not have consented to this measure. CIVIL DISOBEDIENCE 239 This American government, — what is it but a tra- dition, though a recent one, endeavouring to transmit itself unimpaired to posterity, but each instant losing some of its integrity 1 It has not the vitality and force of a single living man; for a single man can bend it to his 'will. It is a sort of wooden gun to the people themselves. But it is not the less necessary for this ; for the people must have some complicated machinery or other, and hear its din, to satisfy that idea of government which they have. Governments show thus how successfully men can be imposed on, even impose on themselves, for their own advantage. It is excellent, we must all allow. Yet this govern- ment never of itself furthered any enterprise, but by the alacrity with which it got out of its way. It does not keep the country free. It does not settle the West. It does not educate. The character in- herent in the American people has done all that has been accomplished; and it would have done somewhat more, if the government had not some- times got in its way. For government is an ex- pedient by which men would fain succeed in letting one another alone ; and, as has been said, when it is most expedient, the governed are most let alone by it. Trade and commerce, if they were not made of India-rubber, would never manage to bounce over the obstacles which legislators are continually putting in their way ; and, if one were to judge these men wholly by the effects of their actions and not partly by their intentions, they would de- serve to be classed and punished with those mis- 240 SELECTIONS FEOM THOEEAIT chievous persons who put obstructions on the railroads. But, to speak practically and as a citizen, unlike those who call themselves no-government men, I ask for, not at once no government, but at once a better government. Let every man make known what kind of government would command his respect, and that will be one step toward obtaining it. After all, the practical reason why, when the power is once in the hands of the people, a majority are permitted, and for a long period continue, to rule, is not because they are most likely to be in the right, nor because this seems fairest to the minority, but because they are physically the strongest. But a government in which the majority rule in all cases cannot be based on justice, even as far as men understand it. Can there not be a government in which majorities do not virtually decide right and wrong, but conscience? — in which majorities decide only those questions to which the rule of expediency is applicable ? Must the citizen ever for a moment, or in the least degree, resign his conscience to the legislator ? Why has every man a conscience, then 1 I think that we should be men first, and subjects afterward. It is not desirable to cultivate a respect for the law, so much as for the right. The only obligation which I have a right to assume, is to do at any time what I think right, d It is truly enough said, that a corporation has no conscience; but a cor- poration of conscientious men is a corporation with a conscience. Law never made men a whit more just ; CIVIL DISOBEDIENCE 241 and, by means of their respect for it, even the well- disposed are daily made the agents of injustice. A common and natural result of an undue respect for law is, that you may see a file of soldiers, colonel, captain, corporal, privates, powder-monkeys, and all, marching in admirable order over hill and dale to the wars, against their wills, ay, against their common sense and consciences, which makes it very steep marching indeed, and produces a palpitation of the heart. They have no doubt that it is a damnable business in which they are concerned ; they are all peaceably inclined. Now, what are they 1 Men at all? or small movable forts and magazines, at the service of some unscrupulous man in power f Visit the Navy- Yard, and behold a marine, such a man as an American government can make, or such as it can make a man with its black arts, — a mere shadow and reminiscence of humanity, a man laid out alive and standing, and already, as one may say, buried under arms with funeral accompaniments, though it may be— " Not a drum was heard, not a funeral note, As his corse to the rampart we hurried ; Not a soldier discharged his farewell shot O'er the grave where our hero we buried. " The mass of men serve the state thus, not as men mainly, but as machines, with their bodies. They are the standing army, and the militia, jailers, constables, posse cmnitatus, etc. In most cases there is no free exercise whatever of the judgment or of the moral sense ; but they put themselves on a level K 242 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU with -wood and earth and stones; and wooden men can perhaps be manufactured that will serve the purpose as well. Such command no more respect than men of straw or a lump of dirt. They have the same sort of worth only as horses and dogs. Yet such as these even are commonly esteemed good citizens. Others, — as most legislators, politicians, lawyers, ministers, and office-holders, — serve the state chiefly with their heads; and, as they rarely make any moral distinctions, they are as hkely to serve the Devil, without intending it, as God. A very few, as heroes, patriots, martyrs, reformers in the great sense, and men, serve the state with their consciences also, and so necessarily resist it for the most part ; and they are commonly treated as enemies by it. A wise man wiU only be useful as a man, and will not submit to be "clay," and "stop a hole to keep the wind away," but leave that office to his dust at least : — " I am too Mgh-born to be propertied, To be a secondary at control, Or useful serving-man and instrument To any sovereign state throughout the world." He who gives himself entirely to his fellow-men appears to them useless and selfish ; but he who gives himself partially to them is pronounced a benefactor and philanthropist. How does it become a man to behave toward this American government to-day 1 I answer, that he cannot without disgrace be associated with it. I cannot for an instant recognise that political organ- CIVIL DISOBEDIENCE 243 isation as my government which is the slave's govern- ment also. All men recognise the right of revolution; that is, the right to refuse allegiance to, and to resist, the government, when its tyranny or its inefficiency are great and unendurable. But almost all say that such is not the case now. But such was the case, they think, in the Revolution of '75. If one were to tell me that this was a bad government because it taxed certain foreign commodities brought to its ports, it is most probable that I should not make an ado about it, for I can do without them. All machines have their friction ; and possibly this does enough good to counterbalance the evil. At any rate, it is a great evil to make a stir about it. But when the friction comes to have its machine, and oppression and robbery are organised, I say, let us not have such a machine any longer. In other words, when a sixth of the population of a nation which has undertaken to be the refuge of liberty are slaves, and a whole country is unjustly overrun and con- quered by a foreign army, and subjected to military law, I think that it is not too soon for honest men to rebel and revolutionise. What makes this duty the more urgent is the fact, that the country so overrun is not our own, but ours is the invading army. Paley, a common authority with many on moral questions, in his chapter on the "Duty of Submission to Civil Government," resolves all civil obligation into expediency ; and he proceeds to say, " that so 244 SELECTIONS FEOM THOREAU long as the interest of the whole society requires it, that is, so long as the established government cannot be resisted or changed without public inconveniency, it is the will of God that the established government be obeyed, and no longer. . . This principle being admitted, the justice of every particular case of resist- ance is reduced to a computation of the quantity of the danger and grievance on the one side, and of the probability and expense of redressing it on the other." Of this, he says, every man shall judge for himself. But Paley appears never to have contemplated those cases to which the rule of expediency does not apply, in which a people, as well as an individual, must do justice, cost what it may. If I have unjustly wrested a plank from a drowning man, I must restore it to him though I drown myseK. This, according to Paley, would be inconvenient. But he that would save his life, in such a case, shall lose it. This people must cease to hold slaves, and to make war on Mexico, though it cost them their existence as a people. In their practice, nations agree with Paley; but does any one think that Massachusetts does exactly what is right at the present crisis 1 " A drab of state, a cloth-o' -silver slut, To have her train borne up, and her soul trail in the dirt" Practically speaking, the opponents to a reform in Massachusetts are not a hundred thousand politicians at the South, but a hundred thousand merchants and farmers here, who are more interested in commerce and agriculture than they are in humanity, and are CIVIL DISOBEDIENCE 245 not prepared to do justice to the slave and to Mexico, cost what it may. I quarrel not with far-off foes, but with those who, near at home, co-operate with, and do the bidding of, those far away, and without whom the latter would be harmless. We are accustomed to say, that the mass of men are unprepared ; but improvement is slow, because the few are not materially wiser or better than the many. It is not so important that many should be as good as you, as that there be some absolute goodness somewhere ; for that will leaven the whole lump. There are thousands who are in opinion opposed to slavery and to the war, who yet in effect -do nothing to put an end to them ; who, esteeming themselves children of Washington and Franklin, sit down with their hands in their pockets, and say that they know not what to do, and do nothing ; who even postpone the question of freedom to the question of free-trade, and quietly read the prices-current along with the latest advices from Mexico, after dinner, and, it may be, fall asleep over them both. What is the price- current of an honest man and patriot to-day? They hesitate, and they regret, and sometimes they petition; but they do nothing in earnest and with effect. They will wait, well disposed, for others to remedy the evil, that they may no longer have it to regret. At most, they give only a cheap vote, and a feeble countenance and God-speed, to the right, as it goes by them. There are nine hundred and ninety-nine patrons of virtue to one virtuous man. But it is easier to deal with the 24:6 SELECTIONS FEOM THOKEAU real possessor of a thing than with the temporary guardian of it. All voting is a sort of gaming, like checkers or backgammon, with a slight moral tinge to it, a playing with right and wrong, with moral questions ; and betting naturally accompanies it. The character of the voters is not staked. I cast my vote, per- chance, as I think right; but I am not vitally concerned that that right should prevail. I am willing to leave it to the majority. Its obligation, therefore, never exceeds that of expediency. Even voting for the right is doing nothing for it. It is only expressing to meil feebly your desire that it should prevail. A wise man will not leave the right to the mercy of chance, nor wish it to prevail through the power of the majority. There is but little virtue in the action of masses of men. When the majority shall at length vote for the abolition of slavery, it will be because they are indifferent to slavery, or because there is but little slavery left to be abolished by their vote. They wiU then be the only slaves. Only his vote can hasten the aboHtion of slavery who asserts his own freedom by his vote. I hear of a convention to be held at Baltimore, or elsewhere, for the selection of a candidate for the Presidency, made up chiefly of editors, and men who are politicians by profession; but I think, what is it to any independent, intelligent, and respectable man what decision they may come to 1 Shall we not have the advantage of his wisdom and honesty, nevertheless'? Can we not count upon CIVIL DISOBEDIENCE 247 some independent votes? Are there not many individuals in the country who do not attend con- ventions 1 But no : I find that the respectable man, so called, has immediately drifted from his position, and despairs of his country, when his country has more reason to despair of him. He forthwith adopts one of the candidates thus selected as the only available one, thus proving that he is himself available for any purposes of the demagogue. His vote is of no more worth than that of any un- principled foreigner or hireling native, who may have been bought. O for a man who is a man, and, as my neighbour says, has a bone in his back which you cannot pass your hand through ! Our statistics are at fault : the population has been returned too large. How many men are there to a square thousand miles in this country ? Hardly one. Does not America offer any inducement for men to settle here? The American has dwindled into an Odd Fellow, — one who may be knovm by the development of his organ of gregariousness, and a manifest lack of intellect and cheerful self-reliance ; whose first and chief concern, on coming into the world, is to see that the Almshouses are in good repair ; and, before yet he has lawfully donned the virile garb, to collect a fund for the support of the widows and orphans that may be ; who, in short, ventures to live only by the aid of the Mutual Insur- ance company, which has promised to bury him decently. It is not a man's duty, as a matter of course, to 248 SELECTIONS FKOM THOREAU devote himself to the eradication of any, even the most enormous vs^rong; he may still properly have other concerns to engage him ; but it is his duty, at least, to wash his hands of it, and, if he gives it no thought longer, not to give it practically his support. If I devote myself to other pursuits and contemplations, I must first see, at least, that I do not pursue them sitting upon another man's shoulders. I must get off him first, that he may pursue his con- templations too. See what gross inconsistency is tolerated. I have heard some of my townsmen say, " I should like to have them order me out to help put down an insurrection of the slaves, or to march to Mexico ; — see if I would go " ; and yet these very men have each, directly by their allegiance, and so indirectly, at least, by their money, furnished a substitute. The soldier is applauded who refuses to serve in an unjust war by those who do not refuse to sustain the unjust government which makes the war; is applauded by those whose own act and authority he disregards and sets at naught ; as if the State were penitent to that degree that it hired one to scourge it while it sinned, but not to that degree that it left off sinning for a moment. Thus, under the name of Order and Civil Government, we are all made at last to pay homage to and support our own meanness. After the first blush of sin comes its indifference ; and from immoral it becomes, as it were, Mjimoral, and not quite unnecessary to that life which we have made. The broadest and most prevalent error requires CIVIL DISOBEDIENCE 249 the most disinterested virtue to sustain it. The slight reproach to which the virtue of patriotism is commonly liable, the noble are most likely to incur. Those who, while they disapprove of the character and measures of a government, yield to it their allegiance and support, are undoubtedly its most ■ conscientious supporters, and so frequently the most serious obstacles to reform. Some are petitioning the State to dissolve the Union, to disregard the requisitions of the President. Why do they not dissolve it themselves, — the union between them- selves, and the State, — and refuse to pay their quota into its treasury ? Do not they stand in the same relation to the State, that the State does to the Union ? And have not the same reasons prevented the State from resisting the Union, which have pre- vented them from resisting the State ? How can a man be satisfied to entertain an opinion merely, and enjoy it ? Is there any enjoyment in it, if his opinion is that he is aggrieved? If you are cheated out of a single dollar by your neighbour, you do not rest satisfied with knowing that you are cheated, or with saying that you are cheated, or even with petitioning him to pay you your due ; but you take effectual steps at once to obtain the full amount, and see that you are never cheated again. Action -from principle, the perception and the performance of right, changes things and relations ; it is essentially revolutionary, and does not consist wholly with any- thing which was. It not only divides states and churches, it divides families ; ay, it divides the 250 SELECTIONS FROM THOREAU individual, separating the diabolical in him from the divine. Unjust laws exist : shall we be content to obey them, or shall we endeavour to amend them, and obey them until we have succeeded, or shall we transgress them at once? Men generally, under such a government as this, think that they ought to wait until they have persuaded the majority to alter them. They think that, if they should resist, the remedy would be worse than the evil. But it is the fault of the government itself that the remedy is worse than the evil. It makes it worse. Why is it not more apt to anticipate and provide for reform ? Why does it not cherish its wise minority? Why does it cry and resist before it is hurt 1 Why does it not encourage its citizens to be on the alert to point out its faults, and do better than it would have them ? Why does it always crucify Christ, and ex- communicate Copernicus and Luther, and pronounce Washington and Franklin rebels ? One would think, that a deliberate and practical denial of its authority was the only offence never contemplated by government; else, why has it not assigned its definite, its suitable and proportionate penalty ? If a man who has no property refuses but once to earn nine shillings for the State, he is put in prison for a period unlimited by any law that I know, and determined only by the discretion of those who placed him there ; but if he should steal ninety times nine shillings from the State, he is soon per- mitted to go at large again. CiViL DISOBEDIENCE 251 If the injustice is part of the necessary friction of the machine of government, let it go, let it go : per- chance it will wear smooth, — certainly the machine will wear out. If the injustice has a spring, or a pulley, or a rope, or a crank, exclusively for itself then perhaps you may consider whether the remedy will not be worse than the evil ; but if it is of such a nature that it requires you to be the agent of injustice to another, then, I say, break the law. Let your life be a counter friction to stop the machine. What I have to do is to see, at any rate, that I do not lend myself to the wrong which I condemn. As for adopting the ways which the State has provided for remedying the evil, I know not of such ways. They take too much time, and a man's life will be gone. I have other affairs to attend to. I came into this world, not chiefly to make this a good place to live in, but to live in it, be it good or bad. A man has not everything to do, but something ; and because he cannot do everything, it is not necessary that he should do something wrong. It is not my business to be petitioning the Governor or the Legis- lature any more than it is theirs to petition me ; and, if they should not hear my petition, what should I do then ? But in this case the State has provided no way: its very Constitution is the evil. This may seem to be harsh and stubborn and unconciliatory ; but it is to treat with the utmost kindness and con- sideration the only spirit that can appreciate or deserves it. So is all change for the better, like birth and death, which convulse the body. 252 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU I do not hesitate to say, that those who call them- selves Abolitionists should at once effectually with- draw their support, both in person and property, from the government of Massachusetts, and not wait till they constitute a majority of one, before they suffer the right to prevail through them. I think that it is enough if they have God on their side, without waiting for that other one. Moreover, any man more right than his neighbours constitutes a majority of one already. I meet this American government, or its repre- sentative, the State government, directly, and face to face, once a year — no more — in the person of its tax- gatherer ; this is the only mode in which a man situated as I am necessarily meets it ; and it then says distinctly, Eecognise me ; and the simplest, the most effectual, and, in the present posture of affairs, the indispensablest mode of treating with it on this head, of expressing your little satisfaction with and love for it, is to deny it then. My civil neighbour, the tax-gatherer, is the very man I have to deal with, — for it is, after all, with men and not with parch- ment that I quarrel, — and he has voluntarily chosen to be an agent of the government. How shall he ever know well what he is and does as an officer of the government, or as a man, until he is obliged to consider whether he shall treat me, his neighbour, for whom he has respect, as a neighbour and well-disposed man, or as a maniac and disturber of the peace, and see if he can get over this obstruction to his neigh- bourliness without a ruder and more impetuous CIVIL DISOBEDIENCE 253 thought or speech corresponding with his action. I know this well, that if one thousand, if one hundred, if ten men whom I could name, — if ten honest men only, — ay, if one honest man, in this State of Massachusetts, ceasing to hold slaves, were actually to withdraw from this copartnership, and be locked up in the county jail therefor, it would be the abolition of slavery in America. For it matters not how small the beginning may seem to be : what is once well done is done foij ever. But we love better to talk about it : that we say is our mission. Reform keeps many scores of newspapers in its service, but not one man. If my esteemed neighbour, the State's am- bassador, who will devote his days to the settlement of the question of human rights in the Council Chamber, instead of being threatened with the prisons of Carolina, were to sit down the prisoner of Massachusetts, that State which is so anxious to foist the sin of slavery upon her sister, — though at present she can discover only an act of inhospitality to be the ground of a quarrel with her, — the Legislature would not wholly waive the subject the following winter. Under a government which imprisons any unjustly, the true place for a just man is also a prison. The proper place to-day, the only place which Massachu- setts has provided for her freer and less desponding spirits, is in her prisons, to be put out and locked out of the State by her own act, as they have already put themselves out by their principles. It is there that the fugitive slave, and the Mexican prisoner on 254 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU parole, and the Indian come to plead the wrongs of his race, should find them ; on that separate, but more free and honourable ground, where the State places those who are not tdth her, but against her, — the only- house in a slave State in which a free man can abide with honour. If any think that their influence would be lost there, and their voices no longer afflict the ear of the State, that they would not be as an enemy within its walls, they do not know by how much truth is stronger than error, nor how much more eloquently and effectively he can combat in- justice who has experienced a little in his own person. Cast your whole vote, not a strip of paper merely, but your whole influence. A minority is powerless while it conforms to the majority ; it is not even a minority then ; but it is irresistible when it clogs by its whole weight. If the alternative is to keep all just men in prison, or give up war and slavery, the State will not hesitate which to choose. If a thousand men were not to pay their tax-bills this year, that would not be a violent and bloody measure, as it would be to pay them, and enable the State to commit violence and shed innocent blood. This is, in fact, the definition of a peaceable revolution, if any such is possible. If the tax-gatherer, or any other public officer, asks me, as one has done, "But what shall I do ?" my answer is, " If you really wish to do anything, resign your office." When the subject has refused allegiance, and the officer has resigned his office, then the revolution is accomplished. But even suppose blood should flow. Is there not a sort of blood shed when the conscience CIVIL DISOBEDIENCE 255 is wounded ? Through this wound a man's real man- hood and immortality flow out, and he bleeds to an everlasting death. I see this blood flowing now. I have contemplated the imprisonment of the offender, rather than the seizure of his goods, — though both will serve the same purpose, — because they who assert the purest right, and consequently are most dangerous to a corrupt State, commonly have not spent much time in accumulating property. To such the State renders comparatively small service, and a slight tax is wont to appear exorbitant, particularly if they are obliged to earn it by special labour with their hands. If there were one who lived wholly without the use of money, the State itself would hesitate to demand it of him. But the rich man, — not to make any invidious comparison, — is always sold to the institution which makes him rich. Absolutely speaking, the more money, the less virtue ; for money comes between a man and his objects, and obtains them for him ; and it was certainly no great virtue to obtain it. It puts to rest many questions which he would otherwise be taxed to answer ; while the only new question which it puts is the hard but superfluous one, how to spend it. Thus his moral ground is taken from under his feet. The oppor- tunities of living are diminished in proportion as what are called the "means" are increased. The best thing a man can do for his culture when he is rich is to endeavour to carry out those schemes which he entertained when he was poor. Christ answered the Herodians according to their condition. " Show 256 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU me the tribute-money," said he; — and one took a penny out of his pocket ; — if you use money which has the image of Caesar on it, and which he has made current and valuable, that is, if you are men of the State, and gladly enjoy the advantages of Csesar's govern- ment, then pay him back some of his own when he demands it; "Eender therefore to Caesar that which is Caesar's, and to G-od those things which are God's, " — leaving them no wiser than before as to which was which ; for they did not wish to know. When I converse with the freest of my neighbours, I perceive that, whatever they may say about the magnitude and seriousness of the question, and their regard for the public tranquillity, the long and the short of the matter is, that they cannot spare the protection of the existing government, and they dread the consequences to their property and families of disobedience to it. For my own part, I should not like to think that I ever rely on the protection of the State. But, if I deny the authority of the State when it presents its tax-bill, it will soon take and waste all my property, and so harass me and my children without end. This is hard. This makes it impossible for a man to live honestly, and at the same time comfortably, in outward respects. It will not be worth the while to accumulate pro- perty ; that would be sure to go again. You must hire or squat somewhere, and raise but a small crop, and eat that soon. You must live within yourself, and depend upon yourself, always tucked up and ready for a start, and not have many affairs. A CIVIL DISOBEDIENCE 257 man may grow rich in Turkey even, if he will be in all respects a good subject of the Turkish govern- ment. Confucius said : " If a state is governed by the principles of reason, poverty and misery are subjects of shame ; if a state is not governed by the principles of reason, riches and honours are the subjects of shame." No : until I want the pro- tection of Massachusetts to be extended to me in some distant Southern port, where my liberty is endangered, or until I am bent solely on building up an estate at home by peaceful enterprise, I can afford to refuse allegiance to Massachusetts, and her right to my property and life. It costs me less in every sense to incur the penalty of disobedience to the State, than it would to obey. I should feel as if I were worth less in that case. Some years ago, the State met me in behalf of the Church, and commanded me to pay a certain sum toward the support of a clergyman whose preaching my father attended, but never I myself. "Pay,'' it said, "or be locked up in the jail." I declined to pay. But, unfortunately, another man saw fit to pay it. I did not see why the school- master should be taxed to support the priest, and not the priest the schoolmaster; for I was not the State's schoolmaster, but I supported myself by voluntary subscription. I did not see why the lyceum should not present its tax-bill, and have the State to back its demand, as well as the Church. However, at the request of the selectmen, I con- descended to make some such statement as this in S 258 SELECTIONS FEOM THOEEAU writing : — " Know all men by these presents, that I, Henry Thoreau, do not wish to be regarded as a member of any incorporated society which I have not joined." This I gave to the town clerk; and he has it. The State, having thus learned that I did not wish to be regarded as a member of that church, has never made a like demand on me since ; though it said that it must adhere to its original presumption that time. If I had known how to name them, I should then have signed off in detail from all the societies which I never signed on to ; but I did not know where to find a complete list. I have paid no poll-tax for six years. I was put into a jail once on this account, for one night ; and, as I stood considering the walls of soHd stone, two or three feet thick, the door of wood and iron, a foot thick, and the iron grating which strained the light, I could not help being struck with the foolishness of that institution which treated me as if I were mere flesh and blood and bones, to be locked up. I wondered that it should have concluded at length that this was the best use it could put me to, and had never thought to avail itself of my services in some way. I saw that, if there was a wall of stone be- tween me and my townsmen, there was a still more difficult one to climb or break through, before they could get to be as free as I was. I did not for a moment feel confined, and the walls seemed a great waste of stone and mortar. I felt as if I alone of all my townsmen had paid my tax. They plainly did not know how to treat me, but behaved like persons CIVIL DISOBEDIENCE 259 who are underbred. In every threat and in every compliment there was a blunder; for they thought that my chief desire was to stand on the other side of that stone wall. I could not but smile to see how industriously they locked the door on my medi- tations, which followed them out again without let or hindrance, and tJiey were really all that was danger- ous. As they could not reach me, they had resolved to punish my body ; just as boys, if they cannot come at some person against whom they have a spite, will abuse his dog. I saw that the State was half-witted, that it was timid as a lone woman with her silver spoons, and that it did not know its friends from its foes, and I lost all my remaining respect for it, and pitied it. Thus the State never intentionally confronts a man's sense, intellectual or moral, but only his body, his senses. It is not armed with superior wit or honesty, but with superior physical strength. I was not born to be forced. I will breathe after my own fashion. Let us see who is the strongest. What force has a multitude 1 They only can force me who obey a higher law than I. They force me to become like themselves. I do not hear of rmn being forced to live this way or that by masses of men. What sort of life were that to live? When I meet a government which says to me, " Your money or your Ufe," why should I be in haste to give it my money ? It may be in a great strait, and not know what to do : I cannot help that. It must help itself ; do as I do. It is not worth the while to snivel about it 260 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU I am not responsible for the successful working of the machinery of society. I am not the son of the engineer. I perceive that, when an acorn and a chestnut fall side by side, the one does not remain inert to make way for the other, but both obey their own laws, and spring and grow and flourish as best they can, till one, perchance, overshadows and destroys the other. If a plant cannot live according to its nature, it dies ; and so a man. The night in prison was novel and interesting enough. ^ The prisoners in their shirt-sleeves were enjoying a chat and the evening air in the doorway, when I entered. But the jailer said, "Come, boys, it is time to lock up" ; and so they dispersed, and I heard the sound of their steps returning into the hollow apartments. My room-mate was introduced to me by the jailer, as " a first-rate fellow and a clever man." When the door was locked, he showed me where to hang my hat, and how he managed matters there. The rooms were whitewashed once a month ; and this one, at least, was the whitest, most simply furnished, and probably the neatest apartment in .the town. He naturally wanted to know where I came from, and what brought me there ; and, when I had told him, I asked him in my turn how he came there, presuming him to' be an honest man, of course ; and, as the world goes, I believe he was. "Why," said he, "they accuse me of burning a barn ; but I never did it. " As near as I could discover, he had prob- ably gone to bed in a barn when drunk, and smoked his pipe there ; and so a barn was burnt. He had the reputation of being a clever man, had been there some three months waiting for his trial to come on, and would have to wait as much longer ; but he was quite domesticated and contented, since he got his board for nothing, and thought that he was well treated. He occupied one window, and I the other ; and I saw, that, if one stayed there long, his principal business would be to look out the window. I had soon read all the tracts that were left there, and examined where former prisoners had broken out, and where a grate had been sawed on, and heard the history of the various occupants of that room ; for I found that even here there was a history and a gossip which never circulated beyond the walls of the jail. Probably this is the only house in the ' This refers to Thoreau's imprisonment in 1845 for his refusal to pay the poll-tax. CIVIL DISOBEDIENCE 261 town where verses are composed, whioli are afterward printed in a circular form, but not published. I was shown quite a long list of verses which were composed by some young men who had been detected in an attempt to escape, who avenged themselves by singing them. I pumped my fellow-prisoner as dry as I could, for fear I should never see him again ; but at length he showed me which was my bed, and left me to blow out the lamp. It was like travelling into a far country, such as I had never expected to behold, to lie there for one night. It seemed to me that I never had heard the town-clock strike before, nor the evening sounds of the village ; for we slept with the windows open, which were inside the grating. It was to see my native village in the light of the Middle Ages, and our Concord was turned into a Rhine stream, and visions of knights and castles passed before me. They were the voices of old burghers that I heard in the streets. I was an involuntary spectator and audi- tor of whatever was done and said in the kitchen of the adjacent village-inn, — a wholly new and rare experience to me. It was a closer view of my native town. I was fairly inside of it. I never had seen its institutions before. This is one of its peculiar institutions ; for it is a shire town. I began to com- prehend what its inhabitants were about. In the morning, our breakfasts were put through the hole in the door, in small oblong-square tin pans, made to fit, and holding a pint of chocolate, with brown bread, and an iron spoon. When they called for the vessels again, I was green enough to return what bread I had left ; but my comrade seized it, and said that I should lay that up for lunch or dinner. Soon after he was let out to work at haying in a neighbouring field, whither he went every day, and would not be back till noon ; so he bade me good-day, saying that he doubted if he should see me again. When I came out of prison, — for some one interfered, and paid that tax,' — I did not perceive that great changes had taken place on the common, such as he observed who went in a youth, and emerged a tottering and gray-headed man ; and yet a change had to my eyes come over the scene, — the town, and State, and country, — greater than any that mere time could effect. I saw yet more distinctly the State in which I lived. I saw to what extent the people among whom I lived could be trusted as good neighbours and friends ; that their friendship was for summer weather only ; that they did not greatly propose to do right ; that they were a distinct race ■^ This was not Emerson, as has been supposed, but Thoreau's mother and aunts. The jailer, who is still living, says the pay- ment of the tax made Thoreau "mad as the devil." 262 SELECTIONS FKOM THOEEAU from me by their prejudices and superstitions, as the Chinamen and Malays are ; that, in their sacrifices to humanity, they ran no risks, not even to their property ; that, after all, they were not so noble but they treated the thief as he had treated them, and hoped, by a certain outward observance and a few prayers, and by walking in a particular straight though useless path from time to time, to save their souls. This may be to judge my neighbours harshly ; for I believe that many of them are not aware that they have such an institution as the jail in their village. It was formerly the custom in our village, when a poor debtor came out of jail, for his acquaintances to salute him, looking through their fingers, which were crossed to represent the grating of a jail window, ' ' How do ye do ? " My neighbours did not thus salute me, but first looked at me, and then at one another, as if I had returned from a long journey. I was put into jail as I was going to the shoemaker's to get a shoe which was mended. When I was let out the next morning, I pro- ceeded to finish my errand, and having put on my mended shoe, joined a huckleberry party, who were impatient to put them- selves under my conduct ; and in half an hour, — for the horse was soon tackled, — was in the midst of a huckleberry field, on one of our highest hills, two miles off, and then the State was nowhere to be seen. This is the whole history of " My Prisons." I have never declined paying the highway tax, because I am as desirous of being a good neighbour as I am of being a bad subject ; and, as for supporting schools, I am doing my part to educate my fellow- countrymen now. It is for no particular item in the tax-bill that I refuse to pay it. I simply wish to refuse allegiance to the State, to withdraw and stand aloof from it effectually. I do not care to trace the course of my dollar, if I could, till it buys a man or a musket to shoot one with, — the dollar is innocent, — but I am concerned to trace the effects of my allegiance. In fact, I quietly declare war with the State, after my fashion, though I will still make what use and get what advantage of her I can, as is usual in such cases. CIVIL DISOBEDIENCE 263 If others pay the tax which is demanded of me, from a sympathy with the State, they do but what they have already done in their own case, or rather they abet injustice to a greater extent than the State requires. If they pay the tax from a mistaken in- ■ terest in the individual taxed, to save his property, or prevent his going to jail, it is because they have not considered wisely how far they let their private feelings interfere with the public good. This, then, is my position at present. But one cannot be too much on his guard in such a case, lest his action be biassed by obstinacy, or an undue regard for the opinions of men. Let him see that he does only what belongs to himself and to the hour, I think sometimes. Why, this people mean well ; they are only ignorant ; they would do better if they knew how : why give your neighbours this pain to treat you as they are not inclined to ? But I think again, this is no reason why I should do as they do, or permit others to suffer much greater pain of a different kind. Again, I sometimes say to myself, When many millions of men, without heat, without ill will, without personal feeling of any kind, demand of you a few shillings only, without the possibility, such is their constitution, of retracting or altering their present demand, and without the possibility, on your side, of appeal to any other millions, why expose yourself to this overwhelming brute force? You do not resist cold and hunger, the winds and the waves, thus obstinately; you quietly submit to a thousand similar necessities. You do not put your 264 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU head into the fire. But just in proportion as I regard this as not wholly a brute force, but partly a human force, and consider that I have relations to those millions as to so many millions of men, and not of mere brute or inanimate things, I see that appeal is possible, first and instantaneously, from them to the Maker of them, and, secondly, from them to themselves. But, if I put my head deliberately into the fire, there is no appeal to fire or to the Maker of fire, and I have only myself to blame. If I could convince myself that I have any right to be satisfied with men as they are, and to treat them accordingly, and not according, in some respects, to my requisi- tions and expectations of what they and I ought to be, then, like a good Mussulman and fatalist, I should endeavour to be satisfied with things as they are, and say it is the will of God. And, above all, there is this difference between resisting this and a purely brute or natural force, that I can resist this with some effect ; but I cannot expect like Orpheus, to change the nature of the rocks and trees and beasts. I do not wish to quarrel with any man or nation. I do not wish to split hairs, to make fine distinctions, or set myself up as better than my neighbours. I seek rather, I may say, even an excuse for conform- ing to the laws of the land. I am but too ready to conform to them. Indeed, I have reason to suspect myself on this head ; and each year, as the tax- gatherer comes round, I find myself disposed to re- view the acts and position of the general and State ? CIVIL DISOBEDIENCE 265 governments, and the spirit of the people, to discover a pretext for conformity. " "We must affect our country as our parents, And if at any time we alienate Our love or industry from doing it honour, We must respect effects and teach the soul Matter of conscience and religion, And not desire of rule or benefit." I believe that the State will soon be able to take all my work of this sort out of my hands, and then I shall be no better a patriot than my fellow-countrymen. Seen from a lower point of view, the Constitution, with all its faults, is very good; the law and the courts are very respectable ; even this State and this American government are, in many respects, very admirable and rare things, to be thankful for, such as a great many have described them ; but seen from a point of view a little higher, they are what I have described them ; seen from a higher still, and the highest, who shall say what they are, or that they are worth looking at or thinking of at all 1 r However, the government does not concern me much, and I shall bestow the fewest possible thoughts on it. It is not many moments that I live under a government, even in this world. If a man is thought- free, fancy-free, imagination-free, that which is not never for a long time appearing to be to him, unwise rulers or reformers cannot fatally interrupt him. The authority of government, even such as I am willing to submit to, — for I will cheerfully obey those who know and can do better than I, and in many 266 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU things even those who neither know nor can do so well, — is still an impure one : to be strictly just, it must have the sanction and consent of the governed. It can have no pure right over my person and pro- perty but what I concede to it. The progress from an absolute to a limited monarchy, from a limited monarchy to a democracy, is a progress toward a true respect for the individual. Even the Chinese philo- sopher was wise enough to regard the individual as the basis of the empire. Is a democracy, such as we know it, the last improvement possible in govern- ment 1 Is it not possible to take a step further towards recognising and organising the rights of man?^There will never be a really free and enlightened State, until the State comes to recognise the individual as a higher and independent power, from which all its own power and authority are derived, and treats him accordingly. I please myself with imagining a State at last which can afford to be just to all men, and to treat the individual with respect as a neighbour ; which even would not think it inconsistent with its own repose, if a few were to live aloof from it, not meddling with it, nor embraced by it, who fulfilled all the duties of neighbours and fellow-men. A State which bore this kind of fruit, and suffered it to drop off as fast as it ripened, would prepare the way for a still more perfect and glorious State, which also I have imagined, but not yet anywhere seen. CK A PLEA FOR CAPTAIN JOHN BEOWN^ I TRUST that you will pardon me for being here. I do not wish to force my thoughts upon you, but I feel forced myself. Little as I know of Captain Brown, I would fain do my part to correct the tone and the statements of the newspapers, and of my countrymen generally, respecting his character and actions. It costs us nothing to be just. We can at least express our sympathy with, and admiration of, him and his companions, and that is what I now propose to do. First, as to his history. I will endeavour to omit, as much as possible, what you have already read. I need not describe his person to you, for probably most of you have seen and will not soon forget him. I am told that his grandfather, John Brown, was an officer in the Eevolution ; that he himself was born in Connecticut about the beginning of this century, but early went with Tais father to Ohio. I heard him say that his father was a contractor who furnished beef to the army there, in the war of 1812 ; that he 1 Eead to the citizens of Concord, Mass., Sunday evening, October 30, 1859. 268 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU accompanied him to the camp, and assisted him in that employment, seeing a good deal of military life, — more, perhaps, than if he had been a soldier ; for he was often present at the councils of the officers. Especially, he learned by experience how armies are supplied and maintained in the field, — a work which, he observed, requires at least as much experience and skill as to lead them in battle. He said that few persons had any conception of the cost, even the pecuniary cost, of firing a single bullet in war. He saw enough, at any rate, to disgust him with a military life ; indeed, to excite in him a great abhor- rence of it ; so much so, that though he was tempted by the offer of some petty office in the army, when he was about eighteen, he not only declined that, but he also refused to train when warned, and was fined for it. He then resolved that he would never have anything to do withfany war, unless it were a war for liberty, f When the troubles in Kansas began, he sent several of his sons thither to strengthen the party of the Free State men, fitting them out with such weapons as he had ; telling them that if the troubles should increase, and there should be need of him, he would follow, to assist them with his hand and counsel. This, as you all know, he soon after did ; and it was through his agency, far more than any other's, that Kansas was made free. For a«Jart of his life he was a surveyor, and at one time he was engaged in wool-growing, and he went to Europe as an agent about that business. A PLEA FOR CAPTAIN JOHN BROWN 269 There, as everywhere, he had his eyes about him, and made many original observations. He said, for in- stance, that he saw why the soil of England was so rich, and that of Germany (I think it was) so poor, and he thought of writing to some of the crowned heads about it. It was because in England the peasantry live on the soil which they cultivate, but in G-ermany they are gathered into villages, at night. It is a pity that he did not make a book of his obser- vations. I should say that he was an old-fashioned man in his respect for the Constitution, and his faith in the permanence of this Union. Slavery he deemed to be wholly opposed to these, and he was its determined foe. He was by descent and birth a New England farmer, a man of great common-sense, deliberate and practical as that class is, and tenfold more so. He was like the best of those who stood at Concord Bridge once, on Lexington Common, and on Bunker Hill, only he was firmer and higher principled than any that I have chanced to hear of as there. It was no abolition lecturer that converted him. Ethan Allen and Stark, with whom he may in some respects be compared, were rangers in a lower and less im- portant field. They could bravely face their country's j foes, but he had the courage to face his country her- / self, when she was in the wrong. A "Western writer says, to account for his escape from so many perils, that he was concealed under a " rural exterior '' ; as if, in that prairie land, a hero should, by good rights, wear a citizen's dress only. 270 SELECTIONS FEOM THOEEAU He did not go to the college called Harvard, good old Alma Mater as she is. He was not fed on the pap that is there furnished. As he phrased it, "I know no more of grammar than one of your calves.'' But he went to the great university of the West, where he sedulously pursued the study of Liberty, for which he had early betrayed a fondness, and having taken many degrees, he finally commenced the public practice of Humanity in Kansas, as you all know. Such were his humanities and not any study of grammar. He would have left a Greek accent slanting the wrong way, and righted up a falling man. He was one of that class of whom we hear a great deal, but, for the most part, see nothing at all, — the Puritans. It would be in vain to kill him. He died lately in the time of Cromwell, but he reappeared here. Why should he not ? Some of the Puritan stock are said to have come over and settled in New England. They were a class that did something else than celebrate their forefathers' day, and eat parched corn in remembrance of that time. They were neither Democrats nor Eepublicans, but men of simple habits, straightforward, prayerful ; not think- ing much of rulers who did not fear God, not making many compromises, nor seeking after available can- didates. "In his camp," as one has recently written, and as I have myself heard him state, " he permitted no profanity; no man of loose morals was suffered to remain there, unless, indeed, as a prisoner of war. A PLEA FOE CAPTAIN JOHN BKOWN 271 '1 would rather,' said he, 'have the small-pox, yellow- fever, and cholera, all together in my camp, than a man without principle. ... It is a mistake, sir, that our people make, when they think that bullies are the best fighters, or that they are the fit men to oppose these Southerners. Give me men of good principles, — God-fearing men, — men who respect themselves, and with a dozen of them I will oppose any hundred such men as these Buford rufiians.' " He said that if one offered himself to be a soldier under him, who was forward to tell what he could or would do, if he could only get sight of the enemy, he had but little confidence in him. He was never able to find more than a score or so of recruits whom he would accept, and only about a dozen, among them his sons, in whom he had perfect faith. When he was here, some years ago, he showed to a few a little manuscript book, — his "orderly book " I think he called it, — containing the names of his company in Kansas, and the rules by which they bound themselves ; and he stated that several of them had already sealed the contract with their blood. When some one remarked that, with the addition of a chaplain, it would have been a perfect Cromwellian troop, he observed that he would have been glad to add a chaplain to the list, if he could have found one who could fill that office worthily. It is easy enough to find one for the United States army. I believe that he had prayers in his camp morning and evening, nevertheless. He was a man of Spartan habits, and at sixty was 272 SELECTIONS FEOM THOEEAU scrupulous about his diet at your table, excusing himself by saying that he must eat sparingly and fare hard, as became a soldier, or one who was fitting himself for diflficult enterprises, a life of exposure. A man of rare common -sense and directness of speech, as of action ; a transcendentalist above all, a man of ideas and principles, — that was what dis- tinguished him. Not yielding to a whim or transient impulse, but carrying out the purpose of a life. I noticed that he did not overstate anything, but spoke within bounds. I remember, particularly, how, in his speech here, he referred to what his family had suffered in Kansas, without ever giving the least vent to his pent-up fire. It was a volcano with an ordinary chimney-flue. Also referring to the deeds of certain Border RufiSans, he said, rapidly paring away his speech, like an experienced soldier, keeping a reserve of force and meaning, " They had a perfect right to be hung." He was not in the least a rhetorician, was not talking to Buncombe or his con- stituents anywhere, had no need to Invent anything j but to tell the simple truth, and communicate his own resolution ; therefore he appeared incomparably strong, and eloquence in Congress and elsewhere seemed to me at a discount. It was like the speeches of Cromwell compared with those of an ordinary king. As for his tact and prudence, I will merely say, that at a time when scarcely a man from the Free States was able to reach Kansas by any direct route, at least without having his arms taken from him, he, A PLEA FOR CAPTAIN JOHN BEOWN 273 carrying what imperfect guns and other weapons he could collect, openly and slowly drove an ox- cart through Missouri, apparently in the capacity of a surveyor, with his surveying compass exposed in it, and so passed unsuspected, and had ample opportunity to learn the designs of the enemy. For some time after his arrival he still followed the same profession. When, for instance, he saw a knot of the ruflBans on the prairie, discussing, of course, the single topic which then occupied their minds, he would, perhaps, take his compass and one of his sons, and proceed to run an imaginary line right through the very spot on which that conclave had assembled, and when he came up to them, he would naturally pause and have some talk with them, learning their news, and, at last, all their plans perfectly ; and having thus com- - pleted his real survey he would resume his imaginary one, and run on his line till he was out of sight. When I expressed surprise that he could live in Kansas at all, with a price set upon his head, and so large a number, including the authorities, exasperated against him, he accounted for it by saying, " It is perfectly well understood that I will not be taken." Much of the time for some years he has had to skulk in swamps, suffering from poverty and from sickness, which was the consequence of exposure, befriended only by Indians and a few whites. But though it might be known that he was lurking in a particular swamp, his foes commonly did not care to go in after him. He could even come out into a town where there were more Border Euffians than Free State T 274 SELECTIONS FKOM THOEEAU men, and transact some business, without delaying long, and yet not be molested ; for, said he, " No little handful of men were willing to undertake it, and a large body could not be got together in season." As for his recent failure, we do not know the facts about it. It was evidently far from being a wild and desperate attempt. His enemy, Mr. Vallandigham, is compelled to say, that "it was among the best planned and executed conspiracies that ever failed." Not to mention his other successes, was it a failure, or did it show a want of good management, to dehver from bondage a dozen human beings, and walk off with them by broad daylight, for weeks if not months, at a leisurely pace, through one State after another, for half the length of the North, conspicuous to aU parties, with a price set upon his head, going into a court-room on his way and telling what he had done, thus convincing Missouri that it was not profitable to try to hold slaves in his neighbourhood ? — and this, not because the government menials were lenient, but because they were afraid of him. Yet he did not attribute his success, foolishly, to " his star,'' or to any magic. He said, truly, that the reason why such greatly superior numbers quailed before him was, as one of his prisoners confessed, because they lacked a cause, — a kind of armour which he and his party never lacked. When the time came, few men were found willing to lay down their lives in defence of what they knew to be wrong ; they did not like that this should be their last act in this world. A PLEA FOE CAPTAIN JOHN BROWN 275 But to make haste to his last act, and its effects. The newspapers seem to ignore, or perhaps are really ignorant of the fact, that there are at least as many as two or three individuals to a town through- out the North who think much as the present speaker does about him and his enterprise. I do not hesitate to say that they are an important and growing party. We aspire to be something more than stupid and timid chattels, pretending to read history and our Bibles, but desecrating every house and every day we breathe in. Perhaps anxious politicians may prove that only seventeen white men and five negroes were concerned in the late enterprise ; but their very anxiety to prove this might suggest to themselves that all is not told. Why do they still dodge the truth ? They are so anxious because of a dim consciousness of the fact, which they do not distinctly face, that at least a million of the free inhabitants of the United States would have rejoiced if it had succeeded. They at most only criticise the tactics. Though we wear no crape, the thought of that man's position and probable fate is spoiling many a man's day here at the North for other thinking. If any one who has seen him here can pursue successfully any other train of thought, I do not know what he is made of. If there is any such who gets his usual allowance of sleep, I will warrant him to fatten easily under any circumstances which do not touch his body or purse. I put a piece of paper and a pencil under my pillow, and when I could not sleep, I wrote in the dark. 276 SELECTIONS FKOM THOEEAU On the whole, my respect for my fellow-men, except as one may outweigh a million, is not being increased these days. I have noticed the cold-blooded way in which newspaper writers and men generally speak of this event, as if an ordinary malefactor, though one of unusual " pluck," — as the Governor of Virginia is reported to have said, using the language of the cock-pit, " the gamest man he ever saw," — had been caught, and were about to be hung. He was not dreaming of his foes when the governor thought he looked so brave. It turns what sweetness I have to gall, to hear, or hear of, the remarks of some of my neighbours. When we heard at first that he was dead, one of my townsmen observed that " he died as the fool dieth"; which, pardon me, for an instant suggested a likeness in him dying to my neighbour living. Others, craven -hearted, said disparagingly, that "he threw his life away," becaiise he resisted the government. Which way have they thrown their lives, pray "i — such as would praise a man for attack- ing singly an ordinary band of thieves or murderers. I hear another ask, Yankee-like, " What will he gain by it 1 " as if he expected to fill his pockets by this enterprise. Such a one has no idea of gain but in this wordly sense. If it does not lead to a " surprise " party, if he does not get a new pair of boots, or a vote of thanks, it must be a failure. " But he won't gain anything by it." Well, no, I don't suppose he could get four-and- sixpence a day for being hung, take the year round ; but then he stands a chance to save a considerable part of his soul, — and such a soul ! — A PLEA FOE CAPTAIN JOHN BROWN 277 when you do not. No doubt you can get more in your market for a quart of milk than for a quart of blood, but that is not the market that heroes carry their blood to. Such do not know that like the seed is the fruit, and that, in the moral world, when good seed is planted, good fruit is inevitable, and does not depend on our watering and cultivating; that when you plant, or bury a hero in his field, a crop of heroes is sure to spring up. This is a seed of such force and vitality, that it does not ask our leave to germinate. The momentary charge at Balaclava, in obedience to a blundering command, proving what a perfect machine the soldier is, has, properly enough, been celebrated by a poet laureate ; but the steady, and for the most part successful, charge of this man, for some years, against the legions of Slavery, in obed- ience to an infinitely higher command, is as much more memorable than that, as an intelligent and con- scientious man is superior to a machine. Do you think that that will go unsung ? "Served him right," — "A dangerous man," — "He is undoubtedly insane.'' So they proceed to live their sane, and wise, and altogether admirable lives, reading their Plutarch a little, but chiefly pausing at that feat of Putnam, who was let down into a wolf's den; and in this wise they nourish themselves for brave and patriotic deeds some time or other. The Tract Society could aiFord to print that story of Put- nam. You might open the district schools with the reading of it, for there is nothing about Slavery or the Church in it : unless it occurs to the reader that 278 SELECTIONS FEOM THOEEAU some pastors are wolves in sheep's clothing. "The American Board of Commissioners for Foreign Mis- sions " even, might dare to protest against that wolf. I have heard of boards, and of American boards, but it chances that I never heard of this particular lumber till lately. And yet I hear of Northern men, and women, and children, by families, buying a "life- membership " in such societies as these. A life- membership in the grave ! You can get buried cheaper than that. Our foes are in our midst and all about us. There is hardly a house but is divided against itself, for our foe is the all but universal woodenness of both head and heart, the want of vitality in man, which is the effect of our vice ; and hence are begotten fear, superstition, bigotry, persecution, and slavery of aU kinds. We are mere figure-heads upon a hulk, with livers in the place of hearts. The curse is the worship of idols, which at length changes the worshipper into a stone image himself; and the New-Englander is just as much an idolater as the Hindoo. This man was an exception, for he did not set up even a political graven image between him and his God. A church that can never have done with excom- municating Christ while it exists ! Away with your broad and flat churches, and your narrow and tall churches ! Take a step forward, and invent a new style of out-houses. Invent a salt that will save you, and defend our nostrils. The modern Christian is a man who has consented to say all the prayers in the liturgy, provided you A PLEA FOR CAPTAIN JOHN BROWN 279 will let him go straight to bed and sleep quietly after- ward. All his prayers begin with " Now I lay me down to sleep," and he is for ever looking forward to the time when he shall go to his "long rest." He has consented to perform certain old-established charities, too, after a fashion, but he does not wish to hear of any new-fangled ones ; he doesn't wish to have any supplementary articles added to the contract, to fit it to the present time. He shows the whites of his eyes on the Sabbath, and the blacks all the rest of the week. The evil is not merely a stagnation of blood, but a stagnation of spirit. Many, no doubt, are weU disposed, but sluggish by constitution and by habit, and they cannot conceive of a man who is actuated by higher motives than they are. Accordingly they pro- nounce this man insane, for they know that they could never act as he does, as long as they are themselves. We dream of foreign -countries, of other times and races of men, placing them at a distance in history or space ; but let some significant event like the present occur in our midst, and we discover, often, this distance and this strangeness between us and our nearest neighbours. They are our Austrias, and Chinas, and South Sea Islands. Our crowded society becomes well spaced all at once, clean and handsome to the eye, — a city of magnificent distances. We discover why it was that we never got beyond com- pliments and surfaces with them before ; we become aware of as many versts between us and them as there are between a wandering Tartar and a Chinese town. The thoughtful man becomes a hermit in the 280 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU thoroughfares of the market-place. Impassable seas suddenly find their level between us, or dumb steppes stretch themselves out there. It is the difference of constitution, of intelligence, and faith, and not streams and mountains, that make the true and impassable boundaries between individuals and between states. None but the like-minded can come plenipotentiary to our court. I read all the newspapers I could get within a week after this event, and I do not remember in them a single expression of sympathy for these men. I have since seen one noble statement, in a Boston paper, not editorial. Some voluminous sheets decided not to print the full report of Brown's words to the exclusion of other matter. It was as if a publisher should reject the manuscript of the New Testament, and print Wilson's last speech. The same journal which contained this pregnant news, was chiefly filled, in parallel columns, with the reports of the political conventions that were being held. But the descent to them was too steep. They should have been spared this contrast, — been printed in an extra, at least. To turn from the voices and deeds of earnest men to the cackling of political conventions ! Office- seekers and speech-makers, who do not so much as lay an honest egg, but wear their breasts bare upon an egg of chalk ! Their great game is the game of straws, or rather that universal aboriginal game of the platter, at which the Indians cried hub, hub! Exclude the reports of religious and political con- ventions, and publish the words of a living man. A PLEA FOE CAPTAIN JOHN BEOWN 281 But I object not so much to what they have omitted, as to what they have inserted. Even the Liberator called it " a misguided, wild, and apparently insane effort." As for the herd of newspapers and magazines, I do not chance to know an editor in the country who will deliberately print anything which he knows will ultimately and permanently reduce the number of his subscribers. They do not believe that it would be expedient. How then can they print truth 1 If we do not say pleasant things, they argue, nobody will attend to us. And so they do like some travelling auctioneers, who sing an obscene song, in order to draw a crowd around them. Eepublican editors, obliged to get their sentences ready for the morning edition, and accustomed to look at every- thing by the twilight of politics, express no admira- tion, nor true sorrow even, but call these men " deluded fanatics," — '' mistaken men," — " insane," or " crazed." It suggests what a sane set of editors we are blessed with, not " mistaken men " ; who know very well on which side their bread is buttered, at least. A man does a brave and humane deed, and at once, on all sides, we hear people and parties declar- ing, " I didn't do it, nor countenance him to do it, in any conceivable way. It can't be fairly inferred from my past career." I, for one, am not interested to hear you define your position. I don't know that I ever was, or ever shall be. I think it is mere egotism, or impertinent at this time. Ye needn't take so much pains to wash your skirts of him. No intelli- 282 SELECTIONS FEOM THOEEAU gent man will ever be convinced that lie was any creature of yours. He went and came, as he himself informs us, " under the auspices of John Brown and nobody else." The Republican party does not per- ceive how many his failure will make to vote more correctly than they would have them. They have counted the votes of Pennsylvania & Co., but they have not correctly counted Captain Brown's vote. He has taken the wind out of their sails, — the little wind they had, — and they may as well lie to and repair. What though he did not belong to your clique ! Though you may not approve of his method or his principles, recognise his magnanimity. Would you not like to claim kindredship with him in that, though in no other thing he is like, or likely, to you? Do you think that you would lose your reputation so ? What you lost at the spUe, you would gain at the bung. If they do not mean all this, then they do not speak the truth, and say what they mean. They are simply at their old tricks still. "It was always conceded to him," says one who calls him crazy, " that he was a conscientious man, very modest in his demeanour, apparently inoffensive, untD the subject of Slavery was introduced, when he would exhibit a feeling of indignation unparalleled." The slave-ship is on her way, crowded with its dying victims ; new cargoes are being added in mid- ocean ; a small crew of slaveholders, countenanced by a large body of passengers, is smothering four miUions A PLEA FOE CAPTAIN JOHN BEOWN 283 under the hatches, and yet the politician asserts that the only proper way by which deliverance is to be obtained, is by " the quiet diffusion of the senti- ments of humanity," without any " outbreak." As if the sentiments of humanity were ever found unac- companied by its deeds, and you could disperse them, all finished to order, the pure article, as easily as water with a watering-pot, and so lay the dust. What is that that I hear cast overboard ? The bodies of the dead that have found deliverance. That is the way we are " diffusing " humanity, and its senti- ments with it. Prominent and influential editors, accustomed to deal with politicians, men of an infinitely lower grade, say, in their ignorance, that he acted " on the principle of revenge." They do not know the man. They must enlarge themselves to conceive of him. I have no doubt that the time will come when they will begin to see him as he was. They have got to conceive of a man of faith and of religious principle, and not a politician or an Indian ; of a man who did not wait till he was personally interfered with or thwarted in some harmless business before he gave his life to the cause of the oppressed. If Walker may be considered the representative of the South, I wish I could say that Brown was the representative of the North. He was a superior man. He did not value his bodily life in comparison with ideal things. He did not recognise unjust human laws, but resisted them as he was bid. For once we are lifted out of the trivialness and dust of politics 284 SELECTIONS FROM THOEBAU into the region of truth and manhood. No man in America has ever stood up so persistently and effec- tively for the dignity of human nature, knowing himself for a man, and the equal of any and all governments. In that sense he was the most Ameri- can of us all. He needed no babbling lawyer, making false issues, to defend him. He was more than a match for all the judges that American voters, or office-holders of whatever grade, can create. He could not have been tried by a jury of his peers, because his peers did not exist. When a man stands up serenely against the condemnation and vengeance of mankind, rising above them literally ly a whole body, — even though he were of late the vilest murderer who has settled that matter with himself, — the spectacle is a sublime one, — didn't ye know it, ye Liberators, ye Tribunes, ye Republicans? — and we become criminal in comparison. Do yourselves the honour to recognise him. He needs none of your respect. As for the Democratic journals, they are not human enough to affect me at aU. I do not feel indignation at anything they may say. I am aware that I anticipate a little, — that he was still, at the last accounts, alive in the hands of his foes ; but that being the case, I have all along found myself thinking and speaking of him as physically dead. I do not believe in erecting statues to those who still live in our hearts, whose bones have not yet crumbled in the earth around us, but I would rather A PLEA FOR CAPTAIN JOHN BEOWN 285 see the statue of Captain Brown in the Massachusetts State-House yard, than that of any other man whom I know. I rejoice that I live in this age, that I am his contemporary. What a contrast, when we turn to that political party which is so anxiously shuffling him and his plot out of its way, and looking around for some available slaveholder, perhaps, to be its candidate, at least for one who will execute the Fugitive Slave Law, and all those other unjust laws which he took up arms to annul ! Insane ! A father and six sons, and one son-in- law, and several more men besides, — as many at least as twelve disciples, — all struck with insanity at once; while the same tyrant holds with a firmer gripe than ever his four millions of slaves, and a thousand sane editors, his abettors, are saving their country and their bacon ! Just as insane were his efforts in Kansas. Ask the tyrant who is his most dangerous foe, the sane man or the insane ! Do the thousands who know him best, who have rejoiced at his deeds in Kansas, and have afforded him material aid there, think him insane 1 Such a use of this word is a mere trope with most who persist in using it, and I have no doubt that many of the rest have already in silence retracted their words. Eead his admirable answers to Mason and others. How they are dwarfed and defeated by the contrast ! On the one side, half-brutish, half-timid questioning ; on the other, truth, clear as lightning, crashing into their obscene temples. They are made to stand with 286 SELECTIONS FKOM THOEBAU Pilate, and Gesler, and the Inquisition. How ineffec- tual their speech and action ! and what a void their silence ! They are but helpless tools in this great work. It was no human power that gathered them about this preacher. What have Massachusetts and the North sent a few sane representatives to Congress for, of late years ? — to declare with effect what kind of. senti- ments ? All their speeches put together and boiled down, — and probably they themselves will confess it, — do not match for manly directness and force, and for simple truth, the few casual remarks of crazy John Brown, on the floor of the Harper's Ferry engine- house, — that man whom you are about to hang, to send to the other world, though not to represent you there. No, he was not our representative in any sense. He was too fair a specimen of a man to represent the like of us. Who, then, were his constitu- ents? If you read his words understandingly you will find out. In his case there is no idle eloquence, no made, nor maiden speech, no compliments to the oppressor. Truth is his inspirer, and earnestness the polisher of his sentences. He could afford to lose his Sharpe's rifles, while he retained his faculty of speech, — a Sharpe's rifle of infinitely surer and longer range. And the New York Herald reports the conversa- tion verbatim ! It does not know of what undying words it is made the vehicle. I have no respect for the penetration of any man who can read the report of that conversation, and A PLEA FOK CAPTAIN JOHN BllOWN 287 still call the principal in it insane. It has the ring of a saner sanity than an ordinary discipline and habits of life, than an ordinary organisation, secure. Take any sentence of it, — "Any questions that I can honourably answer, I will ; not otherwise. So far as I am myself concerned, I have told everything truth- fully. I value my word, sir." The few who talk about his vindictive spirit, while they really admire his heroism, have no test by which to detect a noble man, no amalgam to combine with his pure gold. They mix their own dross with it. It is a relief to turn from these slanders to the testimony of his more truthful, but frightened jailers and hangmen. Governor Wise speaks far more justly and appreciatingly of him than any Northern editor, or politician, or public personage, that I chance to have heard from. I know that you can afford to hear him again on this subject. He says : " They are themselves mistaken who take him to be a mad- man. ... He is cool, collected, and indomitable, and it is but just to him to say, that he was humane to his prisoners. . . . And he inspired me with great trust in his integrity as a man of truth. He is a fanatic, vain and garrulous " (I leave that part to Mr. Wise), "but firm, truthful, and intelligent. His men, too, who survive, are like him. . . Colonel Washington says that he was the coolest and firmest man he ever saw in defying danger and death. With one son dead by his side, and another shot through, he felt the pulse of his dying son with one hand, and held his rifle with the other, and commanded his men 288 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEA0 with the utmost composure, encouraging them to be firm, and to sell their lives as dear as they could. Of the three white prisoners, Brown, Stephens, and Coppic, it was hard to say which was most firm." Almost the first Northern men whom the slave- holder has learned to respect ! The testimony of Mr. Vallandigham, though less valuable, is of the same purport, that " it is vain to underrate either the man or his conspiracy. . . . He is the furthest possible removed from the ordin- ary ruflSan, fanatic, or madman." "All is quiet at Harper's Ferry," say the journals. What is the character of that calm which follows when the law and the slaveholder prevail ? I regard this event as a touchstone designed to bring out, with glaring distinctness, the character of this government. We needed to be thus assisted to see it by the light of history. It needed to see itself. When a govern- ment puts forth its strength on the side of injustice, as ours to maintain slavery and kill the liberators of the slave, it reveals itself a merely brute force, or worse, a demoniacal force. It is the head of the Plug- Uglies. It is more manifest than ever that tyranny rules. I see this government to be efiectually allied with France and Austria in oppressing mankind. There sits a tyrant holding fettered four millions of slaves ; here comes their heroic liberator. This most hypocritical and diabolical government looks up from its seat on the gasping foiu- millions, and inquires with an assumption of innocence : " What do you assault me for "! Am I not an honest man 1 Cease A PLEA FOR CAPTAIN JOHN BKOWN 289 agitation on this subject, or I will make a slave of you, too, or else hang you." We talk about a representative government; but what a monster of a government is that where the noblest faculties of the mind, and the whole heart, are not represented. A semi -human tiger or ox, stalk- ing over the earth, with its heart taken out and the top of its brain shot away. Heroes have fought well on their stumps when their legs were shot oif, but I never heard of any good done by such a government as that. The only government that I recognise, — and it matters not how few are at the head of it, or how small its army, — is that power that establishes justice in the land, never that which establishes injustice. What shall we think of a government to which all the truly brave and just men in the land are enemies, standing between it and those whom it oppresses? A government that pretends to be Christian and crucifies a million Christs every day ! Treason ! Where does such treason take its rise ? I cannot help thinking of you as you deserve, ye governments. Can you dry up the fountains of thought? High treason, when it is resistance to tyranny here below, has its origin in, and is first committed by, the power that makes and for ever recreates man. When you have caught and hung all these human rebels, you have accomplished nothing but your own guilt, for you have not struck at the fountain-head. You presume to contend with a foe against whom West Point cadets and rifled cannon U 290 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU point not. Can all the art of the cannon-founder tempt matter to turn against its maker ? Is the form in which the founder thinks he casts it more essential than the constitution of it and of himself 1 The United States have a coffle of four millions of slaves. They are determined to keep them in this condition ; and Massachusetts is one of the confeder- ated overseers to prevent their escape. Such are not all the inhabitants of Massachusetts, but such are they who rule and are obeyed here. It was Massa- chusetts, as well as Virginia, that put down this insur- rection at Harper's Ferry. She sent the marines there, and she will have to pay the penalty of her sin. Suppose that there is a society in this State that out of its own purse and magnanimity saves aU the fugitive slaves that run to us, and protects our coloured fellow -citizens, and leaves the other work to the government, so-called. Is not that government fast losing its occupation, and becoming contemptible to mankind ? If private men are obliged to perform the offices of government, to protect the weak and dispense justice, then the government be- comes only a hired man, or clerk, to perform menial or indifferent services. Of course, that is but the shadow of a government whose existence necessitates a Vigilant Committee. What should we think of the Oriental Cadi even, behind whom worked in secret a vigilant committee 1 But such is the character of our Northern States generally ; each has its Vigilant Committee. And, to a certain extent, these crazy governments recognise and accept this relation. A PLEA FOK CAPTAIN JOHN BEOWN 291 They say, virtually, " We'll be glad to work for you on these terms, only don't make a noise about it." And thus the government, its salary being insured, withdraws into the back shop, taking the Constitution with it, and bestows most of its labour on repairing that. When I hear it at work sometimes, as I go by, it reminds me, at best, of those farmers who in winter contrive to turn a penny by following the coopering business. And what kind of spirit is their barrel made to hold 1 They speculate in stocks, and bore holes in mountains, but they are not competent to lay out even a decent highway. The only free road, the Underground Eailroad, is owned and managed by the Vigilant Committee. They have tunnelled under the whole breadth of the land. Such a government is losing its power and respectability as surely as water runs out of a leaky vessel, and is held by one that can contain it. I hear many condemn these men because they were so few. When were the good and the brave ever in a majority 1 Would you have had him wait till that time came'! — till you and I came over to him 1 The very fact that he had no rabble or troop of hirelings about him would alone distinguish him from ordinary heroes. His company was small in- deed, because few could be found worthy to pass muster. Each one who there laid down his life for the poor and oppressed was a picked man, culled out of many thousands, if not millions ; apparently a man of principle, of rare courage, and devoted humanity ; ready to sacrifice his life at any moment for the 292 SELECTIONS FKOM THOKEAU benefit of his fellow-man. It may be doubted if there were as many more their equals in these respects in all the country ; — I speak of his followers only; — for their leader, no doubt, scoured the land far and wide, seeking to swell his troop. These alone were ready to step between the oppressor and the oppressed. Surely they were the very best men you could select to be hung. That was the greatest com- pliment which this country could pay them. They were ripe for her gallows. She has tried a long time, she has hung a good many, but never found the right one before. When I think of him, and his six sons, and his son-in-law, not to enumerate the others, enlisted for this fight, proceeding coolly, reverently, humanely to work, for months if not years, sleeping and waking upon it, summering and wintering the thought, with- out expecting any reward but a good conscience, while almost all America stood ranked on the other side, — I say again that it affects me as a sublime spectacle. If he had had any journal advocating " his cause,'' any organ, as the phrase is, monotonously and wearisomely playing the same old tune, and then passing round the hat, it would have been fatal to his efficiency. If he had acted in any way so as to be let alone by the government, he might have been suspected. It was the fact that the tyrant must give place to him, or he to the tyrant, that distinguished him from all the reformers of the day that I know. It was his peculiar doctrine that a man has a per- fect right to interfere by force with the slaveholder, A PLEA FOB CAPTAIN JOHN BEOWN 293 in order to rescue the slave. I agree with him. They who are continually shocked by slavery have some right to be shocked by the violent death of the slaveholder, but no others. Such will be more shocked by his life than by his death. I shall not be forward to think him mistaken in his method who quickest succeeds to liberate the slave. I speak for the slave when I say, that I prefer the philanthropy of Captain Brown to that philanthropy which neither shoots me nor liberates me. At any rate, I do not think it is quite sane for one to spend his whole life in talking or writing about this matter, unless he is continuously inspired, and I have not done so. A man may have other affairs to attend to. I do not wish to kill nor to be killed, but I can foresee circum- stances in which both these things would be by me unavoidable. We preserve the so-called peace of our community by deeds of petty violence every day. Look at the policeman's billy and handcuffs ! Look at the jail ! Look at the gallows ! Look at the chaplain of the regiment ! We are hoping only to live safely on the outskirts of this provisional army. So we defend ourselves and our hen-roosts, and main- tain slavery. I know that the mass of my country- men think that the only righteous use that can be made of Sharpe's rifles and revolvers is to fight duels with them, when we are insulted by other nations, or to hunt Indians, or shoot fugitive slaves with them, or the like. I think that for once the Sharpe's rifles and the revolvers were employed in a righteous cause. The tools were in the hands of one who could use them. 294 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU The same indignation that is said to have cleared the temple once will clear it again. The question is not about the weapon, but the spirit in which you use it. No man has appeared in America, as yet, who loved his fellow-man so well, and treated him so tenderly. He lived for him. He took up his life and he laid it down for him. What sort of violence is that which is encouraged, not by soldiers, but by peaceable citizens, not so much by laymen as by ministers of the Gospel, no't so much by the fighting sects as by the Quakers, and not so much by Quaker men as by Quaker women 1 This event advertises me that there is such a fact as death, — the possibility of a man's dying. It seems as if no man had ever died in America before ; for in order to die you must first have lived. I don't believe in the hearses, and palls, and funerals that they have had. There was no death in the case, because there had been no life ; they merely rotted or sloughed oif, pretty much as they had rotted or sloughed along. No temple's veil was rent, only a hole dug somewhere. Let the dead bury their dead. The best of them fairly ran down like a clock. Franklin, ^ — Washington, — they were let off without dying ; they were merely missing one day. I hear a good many pretend that they are going to die; or that they have died, for aught that I know. Nonsense ! I'll defy them to do it. They haven't got life enough in them. They'll deliquesce like fungi, and keep a hundred eulogists mopping the spot where they left off. Only half a dozen or so have A PLEA FOE CAPTAIN JOHN BROWN 295 died since the world began. Do you think that you are going to die, sir ? No ! there's no hope of you. You haven't got your lesson yet. You've got to stay after school. We make a needless ado about capital punishment, — taking lives, when there is no life to take. Memento mori! We don't understand that sublime sentence which some worthy got sculptured on his gravestone once. We've interpreted it in a grovelling and snivelling sense; we've wholly forgotten how to die. But be sure you do die nevertheless. Do your work, and finish it. If you know how to begin, you will know when to end. These men, in teaching us how to die, have at the same time taught us how to live. If this man's acts and words do not create a revival, it will be the severest possible satire on the acts and words that do. It is the best news that America has ever heard. It has already quickened the feeble pulse of the North, and infused more and more generous blood into her veins and heart, than any number of years of what is called commercial and political prosperity could. How many a man who was lately contemplating suicide has now something to live for ! One writer says that Brown's peculiar monomania made him to be " dreaded by the Missourians as a supernatural being.'' Sure enough, a hero in the midst of us cowards is always so dreaded. He is just that thing. He shows himself superior to nature. He has a spark of divinity in him. " Unless above himself he can Erect himself, how poor a thing is man ! " 296 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU Newspaper editors argue also that it is a proof of his insanity that he thought he was appointed to do this work which he did, — that he did not suspect himself for a moment ! They talk as if it were im- possible that a man could be "divinely appointed" in these days to do any work whatever ; as if vows and religion were out of date as connected with any man's daily work ; as if the agent to abolish slavery could only be somebody appointed by the President, or by some political party. They talk as if a man's death were a failure, and his continued life, be it of whatever character, were a success. When I reflect to what a cause this man devoted himself, and how religiously, and then reflect to what cause his judges and all who condemn him so angrily and fluently devote themselves, I see that they are as far apart as the heavens and earth are asunder. The amount of it is, our "leading men" are a harmless kind of folk, and they know well enough that they were not divinely appointed, but elected by the votes of their party. Who is it whose safety requires that Captain Brown be hung '! Is it indispensable to any Northern man ? Is there no resource but to cast this man also to the Minotaur? If you do not wish it, say so distinctly. While these things are being done, beauty stands veiled and music is a screeching lie. Think of him, — of his rare qualities ! — such a man as it takes ages to make, and ages to understand; no mock hero, nor the representative of any party. A man such as the sun may not rise upon again in this A PLEA FOE CAPTAIN JOHN BROWN 297 benighted land. To whose making went the costhest material, the finest adamant ; sent to be the redeemer' of those in captivity ; and the only use to which you can put him is to hang him at the end of a rope ! You who pretend to care for Christ crucified, consider what you are about to do to him who offered him- self to be the saviour of four millions of men. Any man knows when he is justified, and all the wits in the world cannot enlighten him on that point. The murderer always knows that he is justly punished ; but when a government takes the life of a man without the consent of his conscience, it is an audacious government, and is taking a step towards its own dissolution. Is it not possible that an indi- vidual may be right and a government wrong 1 Are laws to be enforced simply because they were made 1 or declared by any number of men to be good, if they are not good? Is there any necessity for a man's being a tool to perform a deed of which his better nature disapproves 1 Is it the intention of law-makers that good men shall be hung ever 1 Are judges to in- terpret the law according to the letter, and not the spirit ? What right have you to enter into a compact with yourself that you will do thus or so, against the light within you 1 Is it for you to maJce up your mind, • — to form any resolution whatever, — and not accept the convictions that are forced upon you, and which ever pass your understanding ? I do not believe in lawyers, in that mode of attacking or defending a man, because you descend to meet the judge on his own ground, and, in cases of the highest importance. 298 SELECTIONS FEOM THOEEATJ it is of no consequence whether a man breaks a human law or not. Let lawyers decide trivial cases. Business men may arrange that among themselves. If they were the interpreters of the everlasting laws which rightfully bind man, that would be another thing. A counterfeiting law-factory, standing half in a slave land and half in a free ! What kind of laws for free men can you expect from that 1 I am here to plead his cause with you. I plead not for his life, but for his character, — his immortal life ; and so it becomes your cause wholly, and is not his in the least. Some eighteen hundred years ago Christ was crucified ; this morning, perchance. Captain Brown was hung. These are the two ends of a chain which is not without its links. He is not Old Brown any longer ; he is an angel of light. I see now that it was necessary that the bravest and humanest man in all the country should be hung. Perhaps he saw it himself. I almost fear that I may yet hear of his deliverance, doubting if a prolonged life, if any life, can do as much good as his death. "Misguided"! "Garrulous"! "Insane"! "Vin- dictive " ! So ye write in your easy-chairs, and thus he, wounded, responds from the floor of the Armoury, clear as a cloudless sky, true as the voice of nature is : " No man sent me here ; it was my own prompt- ing and that of my Maker. I acknowledge no master in human form." And in what a sweet and noble strain he proceeds, addressing his captors, who stand over him : " I think, my friends, you are guilty of a great wrong A PLEA FOR CAPTAIN JOHN BEOWN 299 against God and humanity, and it would be perfectly right for any one to interfere with you so far as to free those you wilfully and wickedly hold in bond- age." And, referring to his movement: "It is, in my opinion, the greatest service a man can render to God." "I pity the poor in bondage that have none to help them ; that is why I am here ; not to gratify any personal animosity, revenge, or vindictive spirit. It is my sympathy with the oppressed and the wronged, that are as good as you, and as precious in the sight of God." You don't know your testament when you see it. "I want you to understand that I respect the rights of the poorest and weakest of coloured people, oppressed by the slave power, just as much as I do those of the most wealthy and powerful. " I wish to say, furthermore, that you had better, all you people at the South, prepare yourselves for a settlement of that question, that must come up for settlement sooner than you are prepared for it. The sooner you are prepared the better. You may dispose of me very easily. I am nearly disposed of now; but this question is still to be settled, — this negro question, I mean; the end of that is not yet." I foresee the time when the painter will paint that scene, no longer going to Rome for a subject ; the poet will sing it ; the historian record it ; and, with the Landing of the Pilgrims and the Declaration of 300 SELECTIONS FEOM THOEBAU Independence, it will be the ornament of some future national gallery, wten at least the present form of slavery shall be no more here. We shall then be at liberty to weep for Captain Brown. Then, and not till then, we will take our revenge. LIFE WITHOUT PEINOIPLE At a lyceum, not long since, I felt that the lecturer had chosen a theme too foreign to himself, and so failed to interest me as much as he might have done. He described things not in or near to his heart, but toward his extremities and superficies. There was, in this sense, no truly central or centralising thought in the lecture. I would have had him deal with his privatest experience, as the poet does. The greatest compliment that was ever paid me was when one asked me what I thought, and attended to my answer. I am surprised, as well as delighted, when this happens, it is such a rare use he would make of me, as if he were acquainted with the tool. Commonly, if men want anything of me, it is only to know how many acres I make of their land, — since I am a surveyor, — or, at most, what trivial news I have burdened myself with. They never will go to law for my meat ; they prefer the shell. A man once came a considerable distance to ask me to lecture on Slavery ; but on conversing with him, I found that he and his clique expected seven-eighths of the lecture to be 302 SELECTIONS FEOM THOKEAU theirs, and only one-eighth mine; so I declined. I take it for granted, when I am invited to lecture any- where, — for I have had a little experience in that business, — that there is a desire to hear what I think on some subject, though I may be the greatest fool in the country, — and not that I should say pleasant things merely, or such as the audience wiU assent to ; and I resolve, accordingly, that I will give them a strong dose of myself. They have sent for me, and engaged to pay for me, and I am determined that they shall have me, though I bore them beyond aU precedent. So now I would say something similar to you, my readers. Since you are my readers, and I have not been much of a traveller, I will not talk about people a thousand miles off, but come as near home as I can. As the time is short, I will leave out all the flattery, and retain all the criticism. Let us consider the way in which we spend our lives. This world is a place of business. What an in- finite bustle ! I am awaked almost every night by the panting of the locomotive. It interrupts my dreams. There is no sabbath. It would be glorious to see mankind at leisure for once. It is nothing but work, work, work. I cannot easily buy a blank- book to write thoughts in; they are commonly ruled for dollars and cents. An Irishman, seeing me making a minute in the fields, took it for granted that I was calculating my wages. If a man was tossed out of a window when an infant, and so made a LIFE WITHOUT PEINCIPLE 303 cripple for life, or scared out of his wits by the Indians, it is regretted chiefly because he was thus incapacitated for — business ! I think that there is nothing, not even crime, more opposed to poetry, to philosophy, ay, to life itself, than this incessant business. There is a coarse and boisterous money-making fellow in the outskirts of our town, who is going to build a bank-wall under the hill along the edge of his meadow. The powers have put this into his head to keep him out of mischief, and he wishes me to spend three weeks digging there with him. The result will be that he will perhaps get some more money to hoard, and leave for his heirs to spend foolishly. If I do this, most will commend me as' an industrious and hard-working man ; but if I choose to devote myself to certain labours which yield more real profit, though but little money, they may be inclined to look on me as an idler. Nevertheless, as I do not need the police of meaningless labour to regulate me, and do not see anything absolutely praiseworthy in this fellow's undertaking, any more than in many an enterprise of our own or foreign govern- ments, however amusing it may be to him or them, I prefer to finish my education at a dififerent school. If a man walk in the woods for love of them half of each day, he is in danger of being regarded as a loafer; but if he spends his whole day as a specu- lator, shearing off those woods and making earth bald before her time, he is esteemed an industrious and 304 SELECTIONS FROM THOKBAU enterprising citizen. As if a town had no interest in its forests but to cut them down ! Most men would feel insulted, if it were proposed to employ them in throwing stones over a wall, and then in throwing them back, merely that they might earn their wages. But many are no more worthily employed now. For instance : just after sunrise, one summer morning, I noticed one of my neighbours walking beside his team, which was slowly drawing a heavy hewn stone swung under the axle, surrounded by an atmosphere of industry, — his day's work begun, — his brow commenced to sweat, — a reproach to all sluggards and idlers, — pausing abreast the shoulders of his oxen, and half turning round with a flourish of his merciful whip, while they gained their length on him. And I thought. Such is the labour which the American Congress exists to protect, — honest, manly toil, — honest as the day is long, — that makes his bread taste sweet, and keeps society sweet, — which all men respect and have consecrated ; one of the sacred band, doing the needful but irksome drudgery. Indeed, I felt a slight reproach, because I observed this from a window, and was not abroad and stirring about a similar business. The day went by, and at evening I passed the yard of another neighbour, who keeps many servants, and spends much money fool- ishly, while he adds nothing to the common stock, and there I saw the stone of the morning lying beside a whimsical structure intended to adorn this Lord Timothy Dexter's premises, and the dignity forth- with departed from the teamster's labour, in my eyes. LIFE WITHOUT PKINCIPLE 305 In my opinion, the sun was made to light worthier toil than this. I may add, that his employer has since run off, in debt to a good part of the town, and, after passing through Chancery, has settled some- where else, there to become once more a patron of the arts. The ways by which you may get money almost without exception lead downward. To have done anything by which you earned money merely is to have been truly idle or worse. If the labourer gets no more than the wages which his employer pays him, he is cheated, he cheats himself. If you would get money as a writer or lecturer, you must be popular, which is to go down perpendicularly. Those services which the community will most readily pay for, it is most disagreeable to render. You are paid for being something less than a man. The State does not commonly reward a genius any more wisely. Even the poet-laureate would rather not have to cele- brate the accidents of royalty. He must be bribed with a pipe of wine; and perhaps another poet is called away from his muse to gauge that very pipe. As for my own business, even that kind of survey- ing which I could do with most satisfaction, my em- ployers do not want. They would prefer that I should do my work coarsely and not too well, ay, not well enough. When I observe that there are different ways of surveying, my employer commonly asks which will give him the most land, not which is most correct. I once invented a rule for measuring cord- wood, and tried to introduce it in Boston ; but the X 306 SELECTIONS FEOM THOEEAU measurer there told me that the sellers did not wish to have their wood measured correctly, — that he was already too accurate for them, and therefore they commonly got their wood measured in Charlestown before crossing the bridge. The aim of the labourer should be, not to get his living, to get "a good job," but to perform well a certain work; and, even in a pecuniary sense, it would be economy for a town to pay its labourers so well that they would not feel that they were working for low ends, as for a livelihood merely, but for scientific, or even moral ends. Do not hire a man who does your work for money, but him who does it for love of it. It is remarkable that there are few men so well employed, so much to their minds, but that a little money or fame would commonly buy them off from their present pursuit. I see advertisements for adive young men, as if activity were the whole of a young man's capital. Yet I have been surprised when one has with confidence proposed to me, a grown man, to embark in some enterprise of his, as if I had abso- lutely nothing to do, my life having been a complete failure hitherto. What a doubtful compliment this is to pay me ! As if he had met me half-way across the ocean beating up against the wind, but bound nowhere, and proposed to me to go along with him ! If I did, what do you think the underwriters would say 1 No, no 1 I am not without employment at this stage of the voyage. To tell the truth, I saw an advertisement for able-bodied seamen, when I was a LIFE WITHOUT PRINCIPLE 307 boy, sauntering in my native port, and as soon as I came of age I embarked. The community has no bribe that will tempt a wise man. You may raise money enough to timnel a mountain, but you cannot raise money enough to hire a man who is minding his own business. An efficient and valuable man does what he can, whether the community pay him for it or not. The inefficient offer their inefficiency to the highest bidder, and are for ever expecting to be put into office. One would suppose that they were rarely disappointed. Perhaps I am more than usually jealous with re- spect to my freedom. I feel that my connection with and obligation to society are still very slight and transient. Those slight labours which afford me a livelihood, and by which it is allowed that I am to some extent serviceable to my contemporaries, are as yet commonly a pleasure to me, and I am not often reminded that they are a necessity. So far I am successful. But I foresee, that, if my wants should be much increased, the labour required to supply them would become a drudgery. If I should sell both my forenoons and afternoons to society, as most appear to do, I am sure that for me there would be nothing left worth living for. I trust that I shall never thus sell my birthright for a mess of pottage. I wish to suggest that a man may be very industrious, and yet not spend his time well. There is no more fatal blunderer than he who consumes the greater part of his life getting his living. All great enterprises are self -supporting. The poet, for instance, must 308 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEATJ sustain his body by his poetry, as a steam planing- mill feeds its boilers with the shavings it makes. You must get your living by loving. But as it is said of the merchants that ninety-seven in a hundred fail, so the life of men generally, tried by this standard, is a failure, and bankruptcy may be surely prophesied. Merely to come into the world the heir of a for- tune is not to be born, but to be stiU-born, rather. To be supported by the charity of friends, or a government -pension, — provided you continue to breathe, — by whatever fine synonymes you describe these relations, is to go into the almshouse. On Sundays the poor debtor goes to church to take an account of stock, and finds, of course, that his out- goes have been greater than his income. In the Catholic Church, especially, they go into Chancery, make a clean confession, give up all, and think to start again. Thus men wiU lie on their backs, talk- ing about the fall of man, and never make an eflfort to get up. As for the comparative demand which men make on life, it is an important difference between two, that the one is satisfied with a level success, that his marks can all be hit by point-blank shots, but the other, however low and unsuccessful his life may be, constantly elevates his aim, though at a very slight angle to the horizon. I should much rather be the last man, — though, as the Orientals say, " Greatness doth not approach him who is for ever looking down ; and all those who are looking high are growing poor." LIFE WITHOUT PRINCIPLE 309 It is remarkable that there is little or nothing to be remembered written on the subject of getting a living : how to make getting a living not merely honest and honourable, but altogether inviting and glorious ; for if getting a living is not so, then living is not. One would think, from looking at literature, that this question had never disturbed a solitary individual's musings. Is it that men are too much disgusted with their experience to speak of it "i The lesson of value which money teaches, which the Author of the Universe has taken so much pains to teach us, we are inclined to skip altogether. As for the means of living, it is wonderful how indifferent men of all classes are about it, even reformers, so called, — whether they inherit, or earn, or steal it. I think that Society has done nothing for us in this respect, or at least has undone what she has done. Cold and hunger seem more friendly to my nature than those methods which men have adopted and advise to ward them off. The title wise is, for the most part, falsely applied. How can one be a wise man, if he does not know any better how to live than other men? — if he is only more cunning and intellectually subtle ? Does Wisdom work in a tread-milH or does she teach how to succeed hy her example 1 Is there any such thing as wisdom not applied to life % Is she merely the miller who grinds the finest logic % It is pertinent to ask if Plato got his living in a better way or more success- fully than his contemporaries, — or did he succumb to the difficulties of life like other men % Did he seem 310 SELECTIONS FROM THOKEAU to prevail over some of them merely by indifference, or by assuming grand airs 1 or find it easier to live, because his aunt remembered him in her will 1 The ways in which most men get their living, that is, live, are mere make -shifts, and a shirking of the real business of life, — chiefly because they do not know, but partly because they do not mean, any better. The rush to California, for instance, and the atti- tude, not merely of merchants, but of philosophers and prophets, so called, in relation to it, reflect the greatest disgrace on mankind. That so many are ready to live by luck, and so get the means of com- manding the labour of others less lucky, without contributing any value to society ! And that is called enterprise ! I know of no more startling development of the immorality of trade, and all the common modes of getting a hving. The philosophy and poetry and religion of such a mankind are not worth the dust of a puff-ball. The hog that gets his living by rooting, stirring up the soil so, would be ashamed of such company. If I could command the wealth of all the worlds by lifting my finger, I would not pay such a price for it. Even Mahomet knew that God did not make this world in jest. It makes God to be a moneyed gentleman who scatters a hand- ful of pennies in order to see mankind scramble for them. The world's raffle ! A subsistence in the domains of Nature a thing to be raflled for ! What a comment, what a satire, on our institutions ! The conclusion will be, that mankind will hang itself upon a tree. And have all the precepts in all the LIFE WITHOUT PKINCIPLE 311 Bibles taught men only this? and is the last and most admirable invention of the human race only an improved muck-rake 1 Is this the ground on which Orientals and Occidentals meet ? Did God direct us so to get our living, digging where we never planted, — and He would, perchance, reward us with lumps of gold "i God gave the righteous man a certiiicate entitling him to food and raiment, but the unrighteous man found a, facsimile of the same in God's coffers, and appropriated it, and obtained food and raiment like the former. It is one of the most extensive systems of counterfeiting that the world has seen. I did not know that mankind were suffering for want of gold. I have seen a little of it. I know that it is very malleable, but not so malleable as wit. A grain of gold will gild a great surface, but not so much as a grain of wisdom. The gold-digger in the ravines of the mountains is as much a gambler as his fellow in the saloons of San Francisco. What difference does it make, whether you shake dirt or shake dice 1 If you win, society is the loser. The gold-digger is the enemy of the honest labourer, whatever checks and compensations there may be. It is not enough to tell me that you worked hard to get your gold. So does the Devil work hard. The way of transgressors may be hard in many respects. The humblest observer who goes to the mines sees and says that gold-digging is of the character of a lottery ; the gold thus obtained is not the same thing with the wages of honest toil. But, 312 SELECTIONS FEOM THOEEAU practically, he forgets what he has seen, for he has seen only the fact, not the principle, and goes into trade there, that is, buys a ticket in what commonly proves another lottery, where the fact is not so obvious. After reading Howitt's account of the Australian gold-diggings one evening, I had in my mind's eye, all night, the numerous valleys, with their streams, all cut up with foul pits, from ten to one hundred feet deep, and half a dozen feet across, as close as they can be dug, and partly filled with water, — the locality to which men furiously rush to probe for their fortunes, — uncertain where they shall break ground, — not knowing but the gold is under then- camp itself, — sometimes digging one hundred and sixty feet before they strike the vein, or then missing it by a foot, — turned into demons, and regardless of each other's rights, in their thirst for riches, — whole valleys, for thirty miles, suddenly honeycombed by the pits of the miners, so that even hundreds are drowned in them, — standing in water, and covered with mud and clay, they work night and day, dying of exposure and disease. Having read this, and partly forgotten it, I was thinking, accidentally, of my own unsatisfactory life, doing as others do ; and with that vision of the diggings stiU before me, I asked myself, why /might not be washing some gold daily, though it were only the finest particles, — why / might not sink a shaft down to the gold within me, and work that mine. There is a Ballarat, a Ben- digo for }'ou, — what though it were a sulky-gully? LIFE WITHOUT PKINCIPLE 313 At any rate, I might pursue some path, however solitary and narrow and crooked, in which I could walk with love and reverence. Wherever a man separates from the multitude, and goes his own way in this mood, there indeed is a fork in the road, though ordinary travellers may see only a gap in the paling. His solitary path across-lots will turn out the higher way of the two. Men rush to California and Australia as if the true gold were to be found in that direction; but that is to go to the very opposite extreme to where it lies. They go prospecting farther and farther away from the true lead, and are most unfortunate when they think themselves most successful. Is not our Tuitive soil auriferous 1 Does not a stream from the golden mountains flow through our native valley 1 and has not this for more than geologic ages been bringing down the shining particles and forming the nuggets for us ? Yet, strange to tell, if a digger steal away, prospecting for this true gold, into the un- explored solitudes around us, there is no danger that any will dog his steps, and endeavour to supplant him. He may claim and undermine the whole valley even, both the cultivated and the uncultivated portions, his whole life long in peace, for no one will ever dispute his claim. They will not mind his cradles or his toms. He is not confined to a claim twelve feet square, as at Ballarat, but may mine any- where, and wash the whole wide world in his tom. Howitt says of the man who foimd the great nugget which weighed twenty-eight pounds, at the 314 SELECTIONS FfiOM THOEBAU Beiidigo diggings in Australia : "He soon began to drink ; got a horse, and rode all about, generally at full gallop, and, when he met people, called out to inquire if they knew who he was, and then kindly informed them that he was ' the bloody wretch that had found the nugget.' At last he rode full speed against a tree, and nearly knocked his brains out." I think, however, there was no danger of that, for he had already knocked his brains out against the nugget. Howitt adds, " He is a hopelessly ruined man." But he is a type of the class. They are all fast men. Hear some of the names of the places where they dig: "Jackass Flat," — " Sheep's-Head Gully," — "Murderer's Bar," etc. Is there no satire in these names ? Let them carry their ill-gotten wealth where they will, I am thinking it wiU still be "Jackass Fiat,'' if not "Murderer's Bar," where they live. The last resource of our energy has been the rob- bing of graveyards on the Isthmus of Darien, an enterprise which appears to be but in its infancy ; for, according to late accounts, an act has passed its second reading in the legislature of New Granada, regulating this kind of mining ; and a correspondent of the Trilune writes : " In the dry season, when the weather will permit of the country being properly prospected, no doubt other rich guacas [that is, grave- yards] will bo found." To emigrants he says: "Do not come before December ; take the Isthmus route in preference to the Boca del Toro one ; bring no useless baggage, and do not cumber yourself with a LIFE WITHOUT PEINOIPLE 315 tent ; but a good pair of blankets will be necessary ; a pick, shovel, and axe of good material will be almost all that is required " : advice which might have been taken from the Burker's Guide. And he concludes with this line in italics and small capitals : "If you are doing well at home, stay there," which may fairly be interpreted to mean, " If you are getting a good living by robbing graveyards at home, stay there." But why go to California for a text ? She is the child of New England, bred at her own school and church. It is remarkable that among all the preachers there are so few moral teachers. The prophets are employed in excusing the ways of men. Most rever- end seniors, the illuminati of the age, tell me, with a gracious, reminiscent smile, betwixt an aspiration and a shudder, not to be too tender about these things, — to lump all that, that is, make a lump of gold of it. The highest advice I have heard on these subjects was grovelling. The burden of it was, — It is not worth your while to undertake to reform the world in this particular. Do not ask how your bread is buttered ; it will make you sick, if you do, — and the like. A man had better starve at once than lose his innocence in the process of getting his bread. If within the sophisticated man there is not an un- sophisticated one, then he is but one of the Devil's angels. As we grow old, we live more coarsely, we relax a little in our disciplines, and, to some extent, cease to obey our finest instincts. But we should be 316 SELECTIONS FROM THOREATJ fastidious to the extreme of sanity, disregarding the gibes of those who are more unfortunate than our- selves. In our science and philosophy, even, there is commonly no true and absolute account of things. The spirit of sect and bigotry has planted its hoof amid the stars. You have only to discuss the prob- lem, whether the stars are inhabited or not, in order to discover it. Why must we daub the heavens as well as the earth 1 It was an unfortunate discovery that Dr. Kane was a Mason, and that Sir John Franklin was another. But it was a more cruel suggestion that possibly that was the reason why the former went in search of the latter. There is not a popular magazine in this country that would dare to print a child's thought on important subjects without comment. It must be submitted to the D.D.s. I would it were the chickadee-dees. You come from attending the funeral of mankind to attend to a natural phenomenon. A little thought is sexton to all the world. I hardly know an intellectual man, even, who is so broad and truly liberal that you can think aloud in his society. Most with whom you endeavour to talk soon come to a stand against some institution in which they appear to hold stock, — that is, some particular, not universal, way of viewing things. They will continually thrust their own low roof, with its narrow skylight, between you and the sky, when it is the unobstructed heavens you would view. Get out of the way mth your cobwebs, wash your LIFE WITHOUT PRINCIPLE 317 windows, I say ! In some lyceums they tell me that they have voted to exclude the subject of religion. But how do I know what their religion is, and when I am near to or far from it ? I have walked into such an arena and done my best to make a clean breast of what religion I have experienced, and the audience never suspected what I was about. The lecture was as harmless as moonshine to them. Whereas, if I had read to them the biography of the greatest scamps in history, they might have thought that I had written the lives of the deacons of their church. Ordinarily, the inquiry is. Where did you come from ? or. Where are you going ? That was a more pertinent question which I overheard one of my auditors put to another once, — "What does he lecture for 1 " It made me quake in my shoes. To speak impartially, the best men that I know are not serene, a world in themselves. For the most part, they dwell in forms, and flatter and study effect only more finely than the rest. We select granite for the underpinning of our houses and barns ; we build fences of stone ; but we do not ourselves rest on an underpinning of granitic truth, the lowest primitive rock. Our sills are rotten. What stuff is the man made of who is not coexistent in our thought with the purest and subtilest truth? I often accuse my finest acquaintances of an immense frivolity ; for, while there are manners and compliments, we do not meet, we do not teach one another the lessons of honesty and sincerity that the brutes do, or of steadi- ness and solidity that the rocks do. The fault is 318 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU commonly mutual, however ; for we do not habitually demand any more of each other. That excitement about Kossuth, consider how characteristic, but superficial, it was ! — only another kind of politics or dancing. Men were making speeches to him all over the country, but each ex- pressed only the thought, or the want of thought, of the multitude. No man stood on truth. They were merely banded together, as usual, one leaning on another, and all together on nothing ; as the Hindoos made the world rest on an elephant, the elephant on a tortoise, and the tortoise on a serpent, and had nothing to put under the serpent. For all fruit of that stir we have the Kossuth hat. Just so hollow and ineffectual, for the most part, is our ordinary conversation. Surface meets surface. When our life ceases to be inward and private, con- versation degenerates into mere gossip. We rarely meet a man who can tell us any news which he has not read in a newspaper, or been told by his neigh- bour ; and, for the most part, the only difference between us and our fellow is, that he has seen the newspaper, or been out to tea, and we have not. In proportion as our inward life fails, we go more con- stantly and desperately to the post-office. You may depend on it, that the poor fellow who walks away with the greatest number of letters, proud of his extensive correspondence, has not heard from himself this long while. I do not know but it is too much to read one news- paper a week. I have tried it recently, and for so LIFE WITHOUT PRINCIPLE 319 long it seems to me that I have not dwelt in my native region. The sun, the clouds, the snow, the trees say not so much to me. You cannot serve two masters. It requires more than a day's devotion to know and to possess the wealth of a day. We may well be ashamed to tell what things we have read or heard in our day. I do not know why my news should be so trivial, — considering what one's dreams and expectations are, why the developments should be so paltry. The news we hear, for the most part, is not news to our genius. It is the stalest repetition. You are often tempted to ask, why such stress is laid on a particular experience which you have had, — that, after twenty-five years, you should meet Hobbins, Eegistrar of Deeds, again on the side- walk. Have you not budged an inch, then ? Such is the daily news. Its facts appear to float in the atmo- sphere, insignificant as the sporules of fungi, and impinge on some neglected thallus, or surface of our minds, which affords a basis for them, and hence a parasitic growth. We should wash ourselves clean of such news. Of what consequence, though our planet explode, if there is no character involved in the explosion ? In health we have not the least curiosity about such events. We do not live for idle amuse- ment. I would not run round a corner to see the world blow up. All summer, and far into the autumn, perchance, you unconsciously went by the newspapers and the news, and now you find it was because the morning and the evening were full of news to you. Your 320 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU walks were full of incidents. You attended, not to the affairs of Europe, but to your own affairs in Massachusetts fields. If you chance to live and move and have your being in that thin stratum in which the events that make the news transpire, — thinner than the paper on which it is printed, — then these things will fiU the world for you; but if you soar above or dive below that plane, you cannot remember nor be reminded of them. Really to see the sun rise or go down every day, so to relate ourselves to a universal fact, would preserve us sane for ever. Nations ! What are nations 1 Tartars, and Huns, and Chinamen ! Like insects, they swarm. The historian strives in vain to make them memorable. It is for want of a man that there are so many men. It is individuals that populate the world. Any man thinking may say with the Spirit of Lodin — " I look down from my height on nations, And they become ashes before me ; — Calm is my dwelling in the clouds ; Pleasant are the great fields of my rest." Pray, let us Hve without being drawn by dogs, Esquimaux-fashion, tearing over hill and dale, and biting each other's ears. Not without a slight shudder at the danger, I often perceive how near I had come to admitting into my mind the details of some trivial affair, — the news of the street ; and I am astonished to observe how willing men are to lumber their minds with such rubbish, — to permit idle rumours and incidents of the most insignificant kind to intrude on ground LIFE WITHOUT PKINCIPLE 321 which should be sacred to thought. Shall the mind be a public arena, where the affairs of the street and the gossip of the tea-table chiefly are discussed 1 Or shall it be a quarter of heaven itself, — an hypsethral temple, consecrated to the service of the gods? I find it so difficult to dispose of the few facts which to me are significant that I hesitate to burden my attention with those which are insignificant, which only a divine mind could illustrate. Such is, for the most part, the news in newspapers and conversation. It is important to preserve the mind's chastity in this respect. Think of admitting the details of a single ease of the criminal court into our thoughts, to stalk profanely through their very sanctum sanctorum for an hour, ay, for many hours ! to make a very bar-room of the mind's inmost apartment, as if for so long the dust of the street had occupied us, — the very street itself, with all its travel, its bustle, and filth, had passed through our thoughts' shrine ! Would it not be an intellectual and moral suicide 1 When I have been compelled to sit spectator and auditor in a court- room for some hours, and have seen my neighbours, who were not compelled, stealing in from time to time, and tiptoeing about with washed hands and faces, it has appeared to my mind's eye, that, when they took ofif their hats, their ears suddenly expanded into vast hoppers for sound, between which even their narrow heads were crowded. Like the vanes of wind- mills, they caught the broad, but shallow stream of sound, which, after a few titillating gyrations in their coggy brains, passed out the other side. I wondered T 322 SELECTIONS FKOM THOEEAU if, when they got home, they were as careful to wash their ears as before their hands and faces. It had seemed to me, at such a time, that the auditors and the witnesses, the jury and the counsel, the judge and the criminal at the bar, — ^if I may presume him guilty before he is convicted, — were aU equally criminal, and a thunderbolt might be expected to descend and consume them all together. By all kinds of traps and signboards, threatening the extreme penalty of the divine law, exclude such trespassers from the only ground which can be sacred to you. It is so hard to forget what it is worse than useless to remember ! If I am to be a thoroughfare, I prefer that it be of the mountain-brooks, the Parnassian streams, and not the town-sewers. There is inspiration, that gossip which comes to the ear of the attentive mind from the courts of heaven. There is the profane and stale revelation of the bar-room and the police court. The same ear is fitted to receive both communications. Only the character of the hearer determines to which it shall be open, and to which closed. I believe that the mind can be permanently profaned by the habit of attending to trivial things, so that all our thoughts shall be tinged with triviality. Our very intellect shall be mac- adamised, as it were, — its foundation broken into fragments for the wheels of travel to roll over ; and if you would know what will make the most durable pavement, surpassing rolled stones, spruce blocks, and asphaltum, you have only tolook into some of our minds which have been subjected to this treatment so long. LIFE WITHOUT PRINCIPLE 323 If we have thus desecrated ourselves, — as who has not?— the remedy will be by wariness and devotion to reconsecrate ourselves, and make once more a fane of the mind. We should treat our minds, that is, ourselves, as innocent and ingenuous children, whose guardians we are, and be careful what objects and what subjects we thrust on their attention. Read not the Times. Read the Eternities. Convention- alities are at length as bad as impurities. Even the facts of science may dust the mind by their dryness, unless they are in a sense effaced each morning, or rather rendered fertile by the dews of fresh and living truth. Knowledge does not come to us by details, but in flashes of light from heaven. Yes, every thought that passes through the mind helps to wear and tear it, and to deepen the ruts, which, as in the streets of Pompeii, evince how much it has been used. How many things there are concerning which we might well deliberate whether we had better know them, — had better let their peddling-carts be driven, even at the slowest trot or walk, over that bridge of glorious span by which we trust to pass at last from the farthest brink of time to the nearest shore of eternity ! Have we no culture, no refinement, — but skill only to live coarsely and serve the Devil 1 — to acquire a little worldly wealth, or fame, or liberty, and make a false show with it, as if we were all husk and shell, with no tender and living kernel to us? Shall our institutions be like those chestnut-burrs which contain abortive nuts, perfect only to prick the fingers 1 Y 2 324 SELECTIONS FROM THOREAU America is said to be the arena on which the battle of freedom is to be fought ; but surely it can- not be freedom in a merely political sense that is meant. Even if we grant that the American has freed himself from a political tyrant, he is still the slave of an economical and moral tyrant. Now that the republic, — the res-puUica, — has been settled, it is time to look after the res-privata, — the private state, — to see, as the Roman senate charged its consuls, "ne quid res-PBiVATA detrimenti caper et," that the private state receive no detriment. Do we call this the land of the free 1 What is it to be free from King George and continue the slaves of King Prejudice 1 What is it to be born free and not to live free ? What is the value of any political freedom, but as a means to moral freedom 1 Is it a freedom to be slaves, or a freedom to be free, of which we boast ? We are a nation of politicians, con- cerned about the outmost defences only of freedom. It is our children's children who may perchance be really free. We tax ourselves unjustly. There is a part of us which is not represented. It is taxation without representation. We quarter troops, we quarter fools and cattle of all sorts upon ourselves. We quarter our gross bodies on our poor souls, till the former eat up all the latter's substance. With respect to a true culture and manhood, we are essentially pro^ancial still, not metropolitan, — mere Jonathans. We are provincial, because we do not find at home our standards, — because we do not worship truth, but the reflection of truth, — because LIFE WITHOUT PRINCIPLE 325 we are warped and narrowed by an exclusive devo- tion to trade and commerce and manufactures and agriculture and the like, which are but means, and not the end. So is the English Parliament provincial. Mere country-bumpkins, they betray themselves, when any more important question arises for them to settle, the Irish question, for instance, — the English question why did I not say ? Their natures are subdued to what they work in. Their "good breeding " respects only secondary objects. The finest manners in the world are awkwardness and fatuity, when contrasted with a finer intelligence. They appear but as the fashions of past days, — mere courtliness, knee-buckles and small-clothes, out of date. It is the vice, but not the excellence of manners, that they are continu- ally being deserted by the character ; they are cast- off clothes or shells, claiming the respect which belonged to the living creature. You are presented with the shells instead of the meat, and it is no excuse generally, that, in the case of some fishes, the shells are of more worth than the meat. The man who thrusts his manners upon me does as if he were to insist on introducing me to his cabinet of curiosities, when I wished to see himself. It was not in this sense that the poet Decker called Christ "the first true gentleman that ever breathed." I repeat, that in this sense the most splendid court in Christendom is provincial, having authority to consult about Transalpine interests only, and not the affairs of Eome. A praetor or proconsul would 326 SELECTIONS FROM THOEEAU suffice to settle the questions which absorb the atten- tion of the English Parliament and the American Congress. Government and legislation ! these I thought were respectable professions. We have heard of heaven- born Numas, Lycurguses, and Solons, in the history of the world, whose names at least may stand for ideal legislators ; but think of legislating to regulate the breeding of slaves, or the exportation of tobacco ! What have divine legislators to do with the exporta- tion or the importation of tobacco? what humane ones vnth the breeding of slaves ? Suppose you were to submit the question to any son of God, — and has He no children in the nineteenth century? is it a family which is extinct? — in what condition would you get it again ? What shall a State like Virginia say for itself at the last day, in which these have been the principal, the staple productions? What ground is there for patriotism in such a State? I derive my facts from statistical tables which the States themselves have published. A commerce that whitens every sea in quest of nuts and raisins, and makes slaves of its sailors for this purpose ! I saw, the other day, a vessel which had been wrecked, and many lives lost, and her cargo of rags, juniper-berries, and bitter almonds were strewn along the shore. It seemed hardly worth the while to tempt the dangers of the sea between Leghorn and New York for the sake of a cargo of juniper-berries and bitter almonds. America sending to the Old World for her bitters ! Is not the LIFE WITHOUT PRINCIPLE 327 sea-brine, is not shipwreck, bitter enough to make the cup of life go down here ? Yet such, to a great extent, is our boasted commerce ; and there are those who style themselves statesmen and philosophers who are so blind as to think that progress and civilisation depend on precisely this kind of interchange and activity, — the activity of ilies about a molasses- hogshead. Very well, observes one, if men were oysters. And very well, answer I, if men were mos- quitoes. Lieutenant Herndon, whom our Government sent to explore the Amazon, and, it is said, to extend the area of slavery, observed that there was wanting there "an industrious and active population, who know what the comforts of life are, and who have artificial wants to draw out the great resources of the country." But what are the "artificial wants" to be encouraged? Not the love of luxuries, like the tobacco and slaves of, I believe, his native Virginia, nor the ice and granite and other material wealth of our native New England; nor are "the great resources of a country " that fertility or barren- ness of soil which produces these. The chief want, in every State that I have been into, was a high and earnest purpose in its inhabitants. This alone draws out " the great resources " of Nature, and at last taxes her beyond her resources; for man naturally dies out of her. When we want culture more than potatoes, and illumination more than sugar -plums, then the great resources of a world are taxed and drawn out, and the result, or staple production, is, 328 SELECTIONS PEOM THOEEAU not slaves, nor operatives, but men, — those rare fruits called heroes, saints, poets, philosophers, and redeemers. In short, as a snow-drift is formed where there is a lull in the wind, so, one would say, where there is a lull of truth, an institution springs up. But the truth blows right on over it, nevertheless, and at length blows it down. What is called politics is comparatively something so superficial and inhuman, that, practically, I have never fairly recognised that it concerns me at all. The newspapers, I perceive, devote some of their columns specially to politics or government without charge ; and this, one would say, is all that saves it ; but, as I love literature, and, to some extent, the truth also, I never read those columns at any rate. I do not wish to blunt my sense of right so much. 1 have not got to answer for having read a single President's Message. A strange age of the world this, when empires, kingdoms, and republics come a-begging to a private man's door, and utter their complaints at his elbow ! I cannot take up a news- paper but I find that some wretched government or other, hard pushed, and on its last legs, is interced- ing with me, the reader, to vote for it, — more im- portunate than an Italian beggar; and if I have a mind to look at its certificate, made, perchance, by some benevolent merchant's clerk, or the skipper that brought it over, for it cannot speak a word of English itself, I shall probably read of the eruption of some Vesuvius, or the overflowing of some Po, true LIFE WITHOUT PRINCIPLE 329 or forged, which brought it into this condition. I do not hesitate, in such a case, to suggest work, or the almshouse ; or why not keep its castle in silence, as I do commonly ? The poor President, what with preserving his popularity and doing his duty, is com- pletely bewildered. The newspapers are the ruling power. Any other government is reduced to a few marines at Fort Independence. If a man neglects to read the Daily Times, government will go down on its knees to him, for this is the only treason in these days. Those things which now most engage the atten- tion of men, as politics and the daily routine, are, it is true, vital functions of human society, but should be unconsciously performed, like the corresponding functions of the physical body. They are ivfra- human, a kind of vegetation. I sometimes awake to a half-consciousness of them going on about me, as a man may become conscious of some of the pro- cesses of digestion in a morbid state, and so have the dyspepsia, as it is called. It is as if a thinker submitted himself to be rasped by the great gizzard of creation. Politics is, as it were, the gizzard of society, full of grit and gravel, and the two political parties are its two opposite halves, — sometimes split into quarters, it may be, which grind on each other. Not only individuals, but states, have thus a con- firmed dyspepsia, which expresses itself, you can imagine by what sort of eloquence. Thus our life is not altogether a forgetting, but also, alas ! to a great extent, a remembering, of that which we should never 330 SELECTIONS FROM THOREAU have been conscious of, certainly not in our waking hours. Why should we not meet, not always as dyspeptics, to tell our bad dreams, but sometimes as «Mpeptics, to congratulate each other on the ever- glorious morning? I do not make an exorbitant demand, surely. THE END Printed by R. & R. Clark, Edinburgh. The Eversley Series. Globe Si/o. Cloth. 4^-. net per volume. The Works of Matthew Arnold. 8 vols. Essays in Criticism. First Series. Essays in Criticism. Second Series. Eaely and Narrative Poems. Lyric and Elegiac Poems. Dramatic and Later Poems. American Discourses. Letters. Edited by G. W. E. Russell. 2 Vols. The Holy Bible. Arranged in para- graphs, with an Introduction by j. W. Mackail, M.A. In 8 volumes. Vol. i, Genesis — Numbers. Vol. 2. DeuterO' , NOMV — 2 Samuel. Vol. 3. i Kings — Esther. Vol. 4. Job — Song of SolO' MON. Vol, 5. Isaiah — Lamentations, Vol. 6. Ezekiel— Malachi. Vol. 7 Matthew— John. Vol. 8. Acts- Revelation. Essays by George Brimley. Third Edition, Chaucer's Canterbury Tales, Edited by A. W. Pollard. 2 Vols. Miscellaneous Writings of Dean Church. Collected Edition. 9 Vols. Miscellaneous Essays. Dante : and other Essays. St. Anselm. I Spenser. | Bacon. The Oxford Movement. Twelve Years, 1833-1845. The Beginning of the Middle Ages. (Included in this Series by permission of Messrs. Longmans &Co.) Occasional Papers. Selected from The Guardian, The Times, and The Saturday Review, 1846-1890. 2 Vols. Life and Letters of Dean Church. Edited by his Daughter, Mary C. Church. Lectures and Essays by W. K. Clifford, F.R.S. Edited by Leslie Stephen and Sir F. Pollock. New Edition. 2 Vols. Collected Works of Emerson. 6 Vols. With Introduction by John Morley. Miscellanies. | Essays. ] Poems. English Traits and Representa- tive Men. The Conduct of Life, and Society AND Solitude. Letters and Social Aims. Letters of Edward FitzGerald. Edited by W. A. Wright. 2 Vols. More Letters of Edward FitzGrerald. Letters of Edward FitzGerald to Fanny Kemble, 1871-1883. Edited by W. A. Weight. Pausanias and other Greek Sketches. By J. G. Frazer, M.A. Goethe's Maxims and Reflections. Translated, with Introduction, by X. B, Saunders. *»* The Scientific and A rtistic Mojcifns -were selected by Pj-q/essor Huxley and Lord Leighton respectively. Collected Works of Thomas Gray in Prose and Verse. 4 Vols. Edited by Edmund Gosse. Vol. i. Poems, Jour- nals, and Essays. Vols. 2and,3. Letters. Vol. 4. Notes on Aristophanes and Plato. Works by John Richard Green. 14V0IS. Historv of the English People. 8 Vols. The Making of England. With Maps. In 2 Vols. The Conquest of England. With Maps. In 2 Vols. Stray Studies from England and Italy. Oxford Studies. Guesses at Truth. By Two Brothers. The Choice of Books, and other Liter- ary Pieces. By Frederic Harrison. Earthwork out of Tuscany. Third Edition. By Maurice Hewlett. Poems of Thomas Hood. Edited, with Prefatory Memoir, by Canon Ainger. In 2 Vols. Vol. 1. Serious Poems. Vol. 2. Poems of Wit and Humour. With Vignettes and Portraits. Collected Essays Of R.H.Hutton. 6 Vols. Literary Essays. Essays on Some of the Modern Guides of English Thought in Matters of Faith. Theological Essays. Criticisms on Contemporary Thought and Thinkers. 2 Vols. Aspects of Religious and Scien- tific Thought. Selected from The Spectator, and Edited by his Niece, E. M. RoscoE. With Portrait. Life and Works of Thomas Henry Huxley. 12 Vols. Vol. I. Method AND Results. Vol. 2. Darwiniana. Vol. 3. Science and Education. Vol. 4. Science and Hebrew Tradition. Vol. 5. Science and Christian Tradition. Vol.6. Hume. With Helps to the Study of Berkeley. Vol. 7. Man's Place in Nature: and other An- thropological Essays. Vol. 8. Dis- courses, Biological and Geologi- cal. Vol. g. Evolution and Ethics, AND other Essays. Vols. 10, n, and 12. Life and Letters of T. H. Huxley. By Leonard Huxley- MACMILLAN AND CO., Ltd., LONDON. The Eversley Series — Continued. Globe Zvo. Cloth. /\s. net per volume. French Poets and. Novelists. By Henry James. Partial Portraits. By Henry James. Modern Greece. Two Lectures. By Sir RiCHAKD Jebb. Letters of Jolin Keats to Ms Family and Friends. Edited by Sidney COLVIN. The Works of Charles Kingsley. 13 Vols. WESTWARD Ho ! 2 Vols. Hypatia. 2 Vols. Yeast, i Vol. Alton Locke. 2 Vols, Two Years Ago, 2 Vols, Hereward the Wake. 2 Vols, Poems, 2 Vols. The Works of Charles Lamb. Edited, with Introduction and Notes, by Canon Ainger. 6 Vols. The Essays of Elia. Poems, Plays, and Miscellaneous Essays. Mrs. Leicester's School, and other Writings. Tales from Shakespeare. By Charles and Mary Lamb. The Letters of Charles Lamb. 2 Vols. Life of Charles Lamb. By Canon Ainger. Historical Essays. ByJ.B.LiGHTFooT, D.D. The Poetical Works of John Milton. Edited, with Memoir, Introduction, and Notes, by David Masson, M.A. 3 Vols, Vol. I. The Minor Poems. Vol z. Paradise Lost. Vol, 3. Paradise Regained, and Samson Agonistes. Collected Works of John Morley. J I Vols. Voltaire. 1 Vol. Rousseau. 2 Vols. Diderot and the Encyclopedists. 3 Vols. On Compromise, i Vol. Miscellanies. 3 Vols, Burke, i Vol. Studies in Literature, i Vol. Essays by F. W. H. Myers. 3 Vols. Science and a Future Life, and OTHER Essays. Classical Essays. Modern Essays. Records of Tennyson, Buskin, and Browning. By Anne Thackeray Ritchie. Workaby Sir John R. Seeley, K.O.M.G., Lltt.D. 5 Vols. The Expansion of England. Two Courses of Lectures. Lectures and Essays. Ecce Homo. A Survey of the Life and Work of Jesus Christ. Natural Religion. Lectures on Political Science. The Works of Shakespeare. 10 Vols, With short Introductions and Foot- notes by Professor C. H. Herford, Vol. I. Love's Labour's Lost — Comedy OF Errors — Two Gentle- men of Verona — Midsummer- Night's Dream. Vol. 2. Taming of the Shrew — Merchant of Venice — Merry Wives of Windsor — Twelfth Night — As You Like It. Vol. 3. Much Ado about Nothing — All's Well that Ends Well — Measure for Measure— Troilus AND Cressida. Vol. 4. Pericles — Cymbeline — The Winter's Tale — The Tempest. Vol. 5. Henry VI.: First Part — Henry VI.: Second Part — Henry VI.: Third Part— Richard III. Vol. 6. King John — Richard II.— Henry IV.: First Part— Henry IV.: Second Part. Vol. 7. Henry V.— Henry VIIL — Titus Andronicus — Romeo and Juliet. Vol. 8. Julius Cesar — Hamlet- Othello. Vol. 9. King Lear — Macbeth — Antony and Cleopatra. Vol. 10. CORIOLANUS — TiMON OF Athens— Poems. Works by James Smetham. Letters. With an Introductory Memoir. Edited by Sarah Smetham and William Davies. With a Portrait. Literary Works. Edited by Willi am Davies. Life of Swift. By Sir Henry Craik, K.C.E. 2 Vols. New Edition. Selections from the Writings of Thoreau. Edited by H. S. Salt. Essays In the History of Religious Thought In the West. By Bishop Westcott, D.D. The Works of William Wordsworth. Edited by Professor Knight. 10 Vols. Poetical Works. S Vols. Prose Works. 2 Vols. The Journals of Dorothy Wordsworth. 2 Vols. MACMILLAN AND CO., Ltd., LONDON.